9173 lines
421 KiB
Plaintext
9173 lines
421 KiB
Plaintext
|
|
||
|
KIDNAPPED, by ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON
|
||
|
|
||
|
Digitized by Cardinalis Etext Press, C.E.K.
|
||
|
Posted to Wiretap in July 1993, as kidnap.txt.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This text is in the PUBLIC DOMAIN.
|
||
|
|
||
|
KIDNAPPED
|
||
|
|
||
|
BEING
|
||
|
|
||
|
MEMOIRS OF THE ADVENTURES OF
|
||
|
|
||
|
DAVID BALFOUR
|
||
|
|
||
|
IN THE YEAR 1751
|
||
|
|
||
|
HOW HE WAS KIDNAPPED AND CAST AWAY; HIS SUFFERINGS IN
|
||
|
|
||
|
A DESERT ISLE; HIS JOURNEY IN THE WILD HIGHLANDS;
|
||
|
|
||
|
HIS ACQUAINTANCE WITH ALAN BRECK STEWART
|
||
|
|
||
|
AND OTHER NOTORIOUS HIGHLAND JACOBITES;
|
||
|
|
||
|
WITH ALL THAT HE SUFFERED AT THE
|
||
|
|
||
|
HANDS OF HIS UNCLE, EBENEZER
|
||
|
|
||
|
BALFOUR OF SHAWS, FALSELY
|
||
|
|
||
|
SO CALLED
|
||
|
|
||
|
WRITTEN BY HIMSELF AND NOW SET FORTH BY
|
||
|
|
||
|
ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON
|
||
|
|
||
|
WITH A PREFACE BY MRS. STEVENSON
|
||
|
|
||
|
NEW YORK
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHARLES SCRIBNER'S SONS
|
||
|
|
||
|
1917
|
||
|
|
||
|
Copyright 1905
|
||
|
|
||
|
By CHARLES SCRIBNER'S SONS
|
||
|
|
||
|
PREFACE
|
||
|
|
||
|
TO
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE BIOGRAPHICAL EDITION
|
||
|
|
||
|
WHILE my husband and Mr. Henley were engaged in writing plays in
|
||
|
Bournemouth they made a number of titles, hoping to use them in
|
||
|
the future. Dramatic composition was not what my husband
|
||
|
preferred, but the torrent of Mr. Henley's enthusiasm swept him
|
||
|
off his feet. However, after several plays had been finished,
|
||
|
and his health seriously impaired by his endeavours to keep up
|
||
|
with Mr. Henley, play writing was abandoned forever, and my
|
||
|
husband returned to his legitimate vocation. Having added one of
|
||
|
the titles, The Hanging Judge, to the list of projected plays,
|
||
|
now thrown aside, and emboldened by my husband's offer to give
|
||
|
me any help needed, I concluded to try and write it myself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I wanted a trial scene in the Old Bailey, I chose the
|
||
|
period of 1700 for my purpose; but being shamefully ignorant of
|
||
|
my subject, and my husband confessing to little more knowledge
|
||
|
than I possessed, a London bookseller was commissioned to send
|
||
|
us everything he could procure bearing on Old Bailey trials. A
|
||
|
great package came in response to our order, and very soon we
|
||
|
were both absorbed, not so much in the trials as in following
|
||
|
the brilliant career of a Mr Garrow, who appeared as counsel in
|
||
|
many of the cases. We sent for more books, and yet more, still
|
||
|
intent on Mr. Garrow, whose subtle cross-examination of
|
||
|
witnesses and masterly, if sometimes startling, methods of
|
||
|
arriving at the truth seemed more thrilling to us than any
|
||
|
novel.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Occasionally other trials than those of the Old Bailey
|
||
|
would be included in the package of books we received from
|
||
|
London; among these my husband found and read with avidity:--
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE
|
||
|
|
||
|
TRIAL
|
||
|
|
||
|
OF
|
||
|
|
||
|
JAMES STEWART
|
||
|
|
||
|
in Aucharn in Duror of Appin
|
||
|
|
||
|
FOR THE
|
||
|
|
||
|
Murder of COLIN CAMPBELL of Glenure, Esq;
|
||
|
|
||
|
Factor for His Majesty on the forfeited
|
||
|
|
||
|
Estate of Ardshiel.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My husband was always interested in this period of his
|
||
|
country's history, and had already the inten- tion of writing a
|
||
|
story that should turn on the Appin murder. The tale was to be
|
||
|
of a boy, David Balfour, supposed to belong to my husband's own
|
||
|
family, who should travel in Scotland as though it were a
|
||
|
foreign country, meeting with various adventures and
|
||
|
misadventures by the way. From the trial of James Stewart my
|
||
|
husband gleaned much valuable material for his novel, the most
|
||
|
important being the character of Alan Breck. Aside from having
|
||
|
described him as "smallish in stature," my husband seems to have
|
||
|
taken Alan Breck's personal appearance, even to his clothing,
|
||
|
from the book.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A letter from James Stewart to Mr. John Macfarlane,
|
||
|
introduced as evidence in the trial, says: "There is one Alan
|
||
|
Stewart, a distant friend of the late Ardshiel's, who is in the
|
||
|
French service, and came over in March last, as he said to some,
|
||
|
in order to settle at home; to others, that he was to go soon
|
||
|
back; and was, as I hear, the day that the murder was committed,
|
||
|
seen not far from the place where it happened, and is not now to
|
||
|
be seen; by which it is believed he was the actor. He is a
|
||
|
desperate foolish fellow; and if he is guilty, came to the
|
||
|
country for that very purpose. He is a tall, pock-pitted lad,
|
||
|
very black hair, and wore a blue coat and metal buttons, an old
|
||
|
red vest, and breeches of the same colour." A second witness
|
||
|
testified to having seen him wearing "a blue coat with silver
|
||
|
buttons, a red waistcoat, black shag breeches, tartan hose, and
|
||
|
a feathered hat, with a big coat, dun coloured," a costume
|
||
|
referred to by one of the counsel as "French cloathes which were
|
||
|
remarkable."
|
||
|
|
||
|
There are many incidents given in the trial that point to
|
||
|
Alan's fiery spirit and Highland quickness to take offence. One
|
||
|
witness "declared also That the said Alan Breck threatened that
|
||
|
he would challenge Ballieveolan and his sons to fight because of
|
||
|
his removing the declarant last year from Glenduror." On another
|
||
|
page: "Duncan Campbell, change-keeper at Annat, aged thirty-five
|
||
|
years, married, witness cited, sworn, purged and examined ut
|
||
|
supra, depones, That, in the month of April last, the deponent
|
||
|
met with Alan Breck Stewart, with whom he was not acquainted,
|
||
|
and John Stewart, in Auchnacoan, in the house of the walk miller
|
||
|
of Auchofragan, and went on with them to the house: Alan Breck
|
||
|
Stewart said, that he hated all the name of Campbell; and the
|
||
|
deponent said, he had no reason for doing so: But Alan said, he
|
||
|
had very good reason for it: that thereafter they left that
|
||
|
house; and, after drinking a dram at another house, came to the
|
||
|
depo- nent's house, where they went in, and drunk some drams,
|
||
|
and Alan Breck renewed the former Conversation; and the
|
||
|
deponent, making the same answer, Alan said, that, if the
|
||
|
deponent had any respect for his friends, he would tell them,
|
||
|
that if they offered to turn out the possessors of Ardshiel's
|
||
|
estate, he would make black cocks of them, before they entered
|
||
|
into possession by which the deponent understood shooting them,
|
||
|
it being a common phrase in the country."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Some time after the publication of Kidnapped we stopped for
|
||
|
a short while in the Appin country, where we were surprised and
|
||
|
interested to discover that the feeling concerning the murder of
|
||
|
Glenure (the "Red Fox," also called "Colin Roy") was almost as
|
||
|
keen as though the tragedy had taken place the day before. For
|
||
|
several years my husband received letters of expostulation or
|
||
|
commendation from members of the Campbell and Stewart clans. I
|
||
|
have in my possession a paper, yellow with age, that was sent
|
||
|
soon after the novel appeared, containing "The Pedigree of the
|
||
|
Family of Appine," wherein it is said that "Alan 3rd Baron of
|
||
|
Appine was not killed at Flowdoun, tho there, but lived to a
|
||
|
great old age. He married Cameron Daughter to Ewen Cameron of
|
||
|
Lochiel." Following this is a paragraph stating that "John
|
||
|
Stewart 1st of Ardsheall of his descendants Alan Breck had
|
||
|
better be omitted. Duncan Baan Stewart in Achindarroch his
|
||
|
father was a Bastard."
|
||
|
|
||
|
One day, while my husband was busily at work, I sat beside
|
||
|
him reading an old cookery book called The Compleat Housewife:
|
||
|
or Accomplish'd Gentlewoman's Companion. In the midst of
|
||
|
receipts for "Rabbits, and Chickens mumbled, Pickled Samphire,
|
||
|
Skirret Pye, Baked Tansy," and other forgotten delicacies, there
|
||
|
were directions for the preparation of several lotions for the
|
||
|
preservation of beauty. One of these was so charming that I
|
||
|
interrupted my husband to read it aloud. "Just what I wanted!"
|
||
|
he exclaimed; and the receipt for the "Lily of the Valley Water"
|
||
|
was instantly incorporated into Kidnapped.
|
||
|
|
||
|
F. V. DE G. S.
|
||
|
|
||
|
DEDICATION
|
||
|
|
||
|
MY DEAR CHARLES BAXTER:
|
||
|
|
||
|
IF you ever read this tale, you will likely ask yourself
|
||
|
more questions than I should care to answer: as for instance how
|
||
|
the Appin murder has come to fall in the year 1751, how the
|
||
|
Torran rocks have crept so near to Earraid, or why the printed
|
||
|
trial is silent as to all that touches David Balfour. These are
|
||
|
nuts beyond my ability to crack. But if you tried me on the
|
||
|
point of Alan's guilt or innocence, I think I could defend the
|
||
|
reading of the text. To this day you will find the tradition of
|
||
|
Appin clear in Alan's favour. If you inquire, you may even hear
|
||
|
that the descendants of "the other man" who fired the shot are
|
||
|
in the country to this day. But that other man's name, inquire
|
||
|
as you please, you shall not hear; for the Highlander values a
|
||
|
secret for itself and for the congenial exercise of keeping it
|
||
|
I might go on for long to justify one point and own another
|
||
|
indefensible; it is more honest to confess at once how little I
|
||
|
am touched by the desire of accuracy. This is no furniture for
|
||
|
the scholar's library, but a book for the winter evening
|
||
|
school-room when the tasks are over and the hour for bed draws
|
||
|
near; and honest Alan, who was a grim old fire-eater in his day
|
||
|
has in this new avatar no more desperate purpose than to steal
|
||
|
some young gentleman's attention from his Ovid, carry him awhile
|
||
|
into the Highlands and the last century, and pack him to bed
|
||
|
with some engaging images to mingle with his dreams.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As for you, my dear Charles, I do not even ask you to like
|
||
|
this tale. But perhaps when he is older, your son will; he may
|
||
|
then be pleased to find his father's name on the fly-leaf; and
|
||
|
in the meanwhile it pleases me to set it there, in memory of
|
||
|
many days that were happy and some (now perhaps as pleasant to
|
||
|
remember) that were sad. If it is strange for me to look back
|
||
|
from a distance both in time and space on these bygone
|
||
|
adventures of our youth, it must be stranger for you who tread
|
||
|
the same streets--who may to-morrow open the door of the old
|
||
|
Speculative, where we begin to rank with Scott and Robert Emmet
|
||
|
and the beloved and inglorious Macbean--or may pass the corner
|
||
|
of the close where that great society, the L. J. R., held its
|
||
|
meetings and drank its beer, sitting in the seats of Burns and
|
||
|
his companions. I think I see you, moving there by plain
|
||
|
daylight, beholding with your natural eyes those places that
|
||
|
have now become for your companion a part of the scenery of
|
||
|
dreams. How, in the intervals of present business, the past must
|
||
|
echo in your memory! Let it not echo often without some kind
|
||
|
thoughts of your friend,
|
||
|
|
||
|
R.L.S.
|
||
|
|
||
|
SKERRYVORE,
|
||
|
|
||
|
BOURNEMOUTH.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CONTENTS
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER PAGE
|
||
|
|
||
|
I I SET OFF UPON MY JOURNEY TO THE HOUSE OF SHAWS
|
||
|
II I COME TO MY JOURNEY'S END.
|
||
|
III I MAKE ACQUAINTANCE OF MY UNCLE .
|
||
|
IV I RUN A GREAT DANGER IN THE HOUSE OF SHAWS .
|
||
|
V I GO TO THE QUEEN'S FERRY .
|
||
|
VI WHAT BEFELL AT THE QUEEN'S FERRY.
|
||
|
VII I GO TO SEA IN THE BRIG "COVENANT" OF DYSART.
|
||
|
VIII THE ROUND-HOUSE .
|
||
|
IX THE MAN WITH THE BELT OF GOLD .
|
||
|
X THE SIEGE OF THE ROUND-HOUSE.
|
||
|
XI THE CAPTAIN KNUCKLES UNDER.
|
||
|
XII I HEAR OF THE "RED FOX" .
|
||
|
XIII THE LOSS OF THE BRIG.
|
||
|
XIV THE ISLET .
|
||
|
XV THE LAD WITH THE SILVER BUTTON: THROUGH THE ISLE OF
|
||
|
MULL.
|
||
|
XVI THE LAD WITH THE SILVER BUTTON: ACROSS MORVEN.
|
||
|
XVII THE DEATH OF THE RED FOX .
|
||
|
XVIIII TALK WITH ALAN IN THE WOOD OF LETTERMORE.
|
||
|
XIX THE HOUSE OF FEAR .
|
||
|
XX THE FLIGHT IN THE HEATHER: THE ROCKS.
|
||
|
XXI THE FLIGHT IN THE HEATHER: THE HEUGH OF CORRYNAKIEGH
|
||
|
.
|
||
|
XXII THE FLIGHT IN THE HEATHER: THE MOOR .
|
||
|
XXIII CLUNY'S CAGE.
|
||
|
XXIV THE FLIGHT IN THE HEATHER: THE QUARREL.
|
||
|
XXV IN BALQUHIDDER.
|
||
|
XXVI END OF THE FLIGHT: WE PASS THE FORTH.
|
||
|
XXVII I COME TO MRRANKEILLOR.
|
||
|
XXVIII I GO IN QUEST OF MY INHERITANCE .
|
||
|
XXIX I COME INTO MY KINGDOM.
|
||
|
XXX GOOD-BYE.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER I
|
||
|
I SET OFF UPON MY JOURNEY TO THE HOUSE OF SHAWS
|
||
|
|
||
|
I WILL begin the story of my adventures with a certain morning
|
||
|
early in the month of June, the year of grace 1751, when I took
|
||
|
the key for the last time out of the door of my father's house.
|
||
|
The sun began to shine upon the summit of the hills as I went
|
||
|
down the road; and by the time I had come as far as the manse,
|
||
|
the blackbirds were whistling in the garden lilacs, and the mist
|
||
|
that hung around the valley in the time of the dawn was
|
||
|
beginning to arise and die away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Campbell, the minister of Essendean, was waiting for me
|
||
|
by the garden gate, good man! He asked me if I had breakfasted;
|
||
|
and hearing that I lacked for nothing, he took my hand in both
|
||
|
of his and clapped it kindly under his arm.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, Davie, lad," said he, "I will go with you as far as
|
||
|
the ford, to set you on the way." And we began to walk forward
|
||
|
in silence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Are ye sorry to leave Essendean?" said he, after awhile.
|
||
|
"Why, sir," said I, "if I knew where I was going, or what was
|
||
|
likely to become of me, I would tell you candidly. Essendean is
|
||
|
a good place indeed, and I have been very happy there; but then
|
||
|
I have never been anywhere else. My father and mother, since
|
||
|
they are both dead, I shall be no nearer to in Essendean than in
|
||
|
the Kingdom of Hungary, and, to speak truth, if I thought I had
|
||
|
a chance to better myself where I was going I would go with a
|
||
|
good will."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay?" said Mr. Campbell. "Very well, Davie. Then it behoves
|
||
|
me to tell your fortune; or so far as I may. When your mother
|
||
|
was gone, and your father (the worthy, Christian man) began to
|
||
|
sicken for his end, he gave me in charge a certain letter, which
|
||
|
he said was your inheritance. 'So soon,' says he, 'as I am gone,
|
||
|
and the house is redd up and the gear disposed of' (all which,
|
||
|
Davie, hath been done), 'give my boy this letter into his hand,
|
||
|
and start him off to the house of Shaws, not far from Cramond.
|
||
|
That is the place I came from,' he said, 'and it's where it
|
||
|
befits that my boy should return. He is a steady lad,' your
|
||
|
father said, 'and a canny goer; and I doubt not he will come
|
||
|
safe, and be well lived where he goes.'"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The house of Shaws!" I cried. "What had my poor father to
|
||
|
do with the house of Shaws?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Nay," said Mr. Campbell, "who can tell that for a surety?
|
||
|
But the name of that family, Davie, boy, is the name you bear --
|
||
|
Balfours of Shaws: an ancient, honest, reputable house,
|
||
|
peradventure in these latter days decayed. Your father, too, was
|
||
|
a man of learning as befitted his position; no man more
|
||
|
plausibly conducted school; nor had he the manner or the speech
|
||
|
of a common dominie; but (as ye will yourself remember) I took
|
||
|
aye a pleasure to have him to the manse to meet the gentry" and
|
||
|
those of my own house, Campbell of Kilrennet, Campbell of
|
||
|
Dunswire, Campbell of Minch, and others, all well-kenned
|
||
|
gentlemen, had pleasure in his society. Lastly, to put all the
|
||
|
elements of this affair before you, here is the testamentary
|
||
|
letter itself, superscrived by the own hand of our departed
|
||
|
brother."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He gave me the letter, which was addressed in these words:
|
||
|
"To the hands of Ebenezer Balfour, Esquire, of Shaws, in his
|
||
|
house of Shaws, these will be delivered by my son, David
|
||
|
Balfour." My heart was beating hard at this great prospect now
|
||
|
suddenly opening before a lad of seventeen years of age, the son
|
||
|
of a poor country dominie in the Forest of Ettrick.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mr. Campbell," I stammered, "and if you were in my shoes,
|
||
|
would you go?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Of a surety," said the minister, "that would I, and
|
||
|
without pause. A pretty lad like you should get to Cramond
|
||
|
(which is near in by Edinburgh) in two days of walk. If the
|
||
|
worst came to the worst, and your high relations (as I cannot
|
||
|
but suppose them to be somewhat of your blood) should put you to
|
||
|
the door, ye can but walk the two days back again and risp at
|
||
|
the manse door. But I would rather hope that ye shall be well
|
||
|
received, as your poor father forecast for you, and for anything
|
||
|
that I ken come to be a great man in time. And here, Davie,
|
||
|
laddie," he resumed, "it lies near upon my conscience to improve
|
||
|
this parting, and set you on the right guard against the dangers
|
||
|
of the world."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here he cast about for a comfortable seat, lighted on a big
|
||
|
boulder under a birch by the trackside, sate down upon it with
|
||
|
a very long, serious upper lip, and the sun now shining in upon
|
||
|
us between two peaks, put his pocket-handkerchief over his
|
||
|
cocked hat to shelter him. There, then, with uplifted
|
||
|
forefinger, he first put me on my guard against a considerable
|
||
|
number of heresies, to which I had no temptation, and urged upon
|
||
|
me to be instant in my prayers and reading of the Bible. That
|
||
|
done, he drew a picture of the great house that I was bound to,
|
||
|
and how I should conduct myself with its inhabitants.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Be soople, Davie, in things immaterial," said he." Bear ye
|
||
|
this in mind, that, though gentle born, ye have had a country
|
||
|
rearing. Dinnae shame us, Davie, dinnae shame us In yon great,
|
||
|
muckle house, with all these domestics, upper and under, show
|
||
|
yourself as nice, as circumspect, as quick at the conception,
|
||
|
and as slow of speech as any. As for the laird -- remember he's
|
||
|
the laird; I say no more: honour to whom honour. It's a pleasure
|
||
|
to obey a laird; or should be, to the young."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, sir," said I, "it may be; and I'll promise you I'll
|
||
|
try to make it so."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, very well said," replied Mr. Campbell, heartily. "And
|
||
|
now to come to the material, or (to make a quibble) to the
|
||
|
immaterial. I have here a little packet which contains four
|
||
|
things." He tugged it, as he spoke, and with some great
|
||
|
difficulty, from the skirt pocket of his coat." Of these four
|
||
|
things, the first is your legal due: the little pickle money for
|
||
|
your father's books and plenishing, which I have bought (as I
|
||
|
have explained from the first) in the design of re-selling at a
|
||
|
profit to the incoming dominie. The other three are gifties that
|
||
|
Mrs. Campbell and myself would be blithe of your acceptance. The
|
||
|
first, which is round, will likely please ye best at the first
|
||
|
off-go; but, O Davie, laddie, it's but a drop of water in the
|
||
|
sea; it'll help you but a step, and vanish like the morning. The
|
||
|
second, which is flat and square and written upon, will stand by
|
||
|
you through life, like a good staff for the road, and a good
|
||
|
pillow to your head in sickness. And as for the last, which is
|
||
|
cubical, that'll see you, it's my prayerful wish, into a better
|
||
|
land."
|
||
|
|
||
|
With that he got upon his feet, took off his hat, and
|
||
|
prayed a little while aloud, and in affecting terms, for a young
|
||
|
man setting out into the world; then suddenly took me in his
|
||
|
arms and embraced me very hard; then held me at arm's length,
|
||
|
looking at me with his face all working with sorrow; and then
|
||
|
whipped about, and crying good-bye to me, set off backward by
|
||
|
the way that we had come at a sort of jogging run. It might have
|
||
|
been laughable to another; but I was in no mind to laugh. I
|
||
|
watched him as long as he was in sight; and he never stopped
|
||
|
hurrying, nor once looked back. Then it came in upon my mind
|
||
|
that this was all his Sorrow at my departure; and my conscience
|
||
|
smote me hard and fast, because I, for my part, was overjoyed to
|
||
|
get away out of that quiet country-side, and go to a great, busy
|
||
|
house, among rich and respected gentlefolk of my own name and
|
||
|
blood.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Davie, Davie," I thought," was ever seen such black
|
||
|
ingratitude? Can you forget old favours and old friends at the
|
||
|
mere whistle of a name? Fie, fie; think shame."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And I sat down on the boulder the good man had just left,
|
||
|
and opened the parcel to see the nature of my gifts. That which
|
||
|
he had called cubical, I had never had much doubt of; sure
|
||
|
enough it was a little Bible, to carry in a, plaid-neuk. That
|
||
|
which he had called round, I found to be a shilling piece; and
|
||
|
the third, which was to help me so wonderfully both in health
|
||
|
and sickness all the days of my life, was a little piece of
|
||
|
coarse yellow paper, written upon thus in red ink:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"TO MAKE LILLY OF THE VALLEY WATER.--Take the flowers of lilly
|
||
|
of the valley and distil them in sack, and drink a spooneful or
|
||
|
two as there is occasion. It restores speech to those that have
|
||
|
the dumb palsey. It is good against the Gout; it comforts the
|
||
|
heart and strengthens the memory; and the flowers, put into a
|
||
|
Glasse, close stopt, and set into ane hill of ants for a month,
|
||
|
then take it out, and you will find a liquor which comes from
|
||
|
the flowers, which keep in a vial; it is good, ill or well, and
|
||
|
whether man or woman." And then, in the minister's own hand, was
|
||
|
added:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Likewise for sprains, rub it in; and for the cholic, a great
|
||
|
spooneful in the hour."
|
||
|
|
||
|
To be sure, I laughed over this; but it was rather tremulous
|
||
|
laughter; and I was glad to get my bundle on my staff's end and
|
||
|
set out over the ford and up the hill upon the farther side;
|
||
|
till, just as I came on the green drove-road running wide
|
||
|
through the heather, I took my last look of Kirk Essendean, the
|
||
|
trees about the manse, and the big rowans in the kirkyard where
|
||
|
my father and my mother lay.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER II
|
||
|
I COME TO MY JOURNEY'S END
|
||
|
|
||
|
ON the forenoon of the second day, coming to the top of a hill,
|
||
|
I saw all the country fall away before me down to the sea; and
|
||
|
in the midst of this descent, on a long ridge, the city of
|
||
|
Edinburgh smoking like a kiln. There was a flag upon the castle,
|
||
|
and ships moving or lying anchored in the firth; both of which,
|
||
|
for as far away as they were, I could distinguish clearly; and
|
||
|
both brought my country heart into my mouth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently after, I came by a house where a shepherd lived,
|
||
|
and got a rough direction for the neighbourhood of Cramond; and
|
||
|
so, from one to another, worked my way to the westward of the
|
||
|
capital by Colinton, till I came out upon the Glasgow road. And
|
||
|
there, to my great pleasure and wonder, I beheld a regiment
|
||
|
marching to the fifes, every foot in time; an old red-faced
|
||
|
general on a grey horse at the one end, and at the other the
|
||
|
company of Grenadiers, with their Pope's-hats. The pride of life
|
||
|
seemed to mount into my brain at the sight of the red coats and
|
||
|
the hearing of that merry music.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A little farther on, and I was told I was in Cramond
|
||
|
parish, and began to substitute in my inquiries the name of the
|
||
|
house of Shaws. It was a word that seemed to surprise those of
|
||
|
whom I sought my way. At first I thought the plainness of my
|
||
|
appearance, in my country habit, and that all dusty from the
|
||
|
road, consorted ill with the greatness of the place to which I
|
||
|
was bound. But after two, or maybe three, had given me the same
|
||
|
look and the same answer, I began to take it in my head there
|
||
|
was something strange about the Shaws itself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The better to set this fear at rest, I changed the form of
|
||
|
my inquiries; and spying an honest fellow coming along a lane on
|
||
|
the shaft of his cart, I asked him if he had ever heard tell of
|
||
|
a house they called the house of Shaws.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He stopped his cart and looked at me, like the others.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay" said he. "What for?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's a great house?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Doubtless," says he. "The house is a big, muckle house."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay," said I, "but the folk that are in it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Folk?" cried he. "Are ye daft? There's nae folk there --
|
||
|
to call folk."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What?" say I; "not Mr. Ebenezer?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ou, ay" says the man; "there's the laird, to be sure, if
|
||
|
it's him you're wanting. What'll like be your business, mannie?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I was led to think that I would get a situation," I said,
|
||
|
looking as modest as I could.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What?" cries the carter, in so sharp a note that his very
|
||
|
horse started; and then, "Well, mannie," he added, "it's nane of
|
||
|
my affairs; but ye seem a decent-spoken lad; and if ye'll take
|
||
|
a word from me, ye'll keep clear of the Shaws."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The next person I came across was a dapper little man in a
|
||
|
beautiful white wig, whom I saw to be a barber on his rounds;
|
||
|
and knowing well that barbers were great gossips, I asked him
|
||
|
plainly what sort of a man was Mr. Balfour of the Shaws.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hoot, hoot, hoot," said the barber, "nae kind of a man,
|
||
|
nae kind of a man at all;" and began to ask me very shrewdly
|
||
|
what my business was; but I was more than a match for him at
|
||
|
that, and he went on to his next customer no wiser than he came.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I cannot well describe the blow this dealt to my illusions.
|
||
|
The more indistinct the accusations were, the less I liked them,
|
||
|
for they left the wider field to fancy. What kind of a great
|
||
|
house was this, that all the parish should start and stare to be
|
||
|
asked the way to it? or what sort of a gentleman, that his
|
||
|
ill-fame should be thus current on the wayside? If an hour's
|
||
|
walking would have brought me back to Essendean, had left my
|
||
|
adventure then and there, and returned to Mr. Campbell's. But
|
||
|
when I had come so far a way already, mere shame would not
|
||
|
suffer me to desist till I had put the matter to the touch of
|
||
|
proof; I was bound, out of mere self-respect, to carry it
|
||
|
through; and little as I liked the sound of what I heard, and
|
||
|
slow as I began to travel, I still kept asking my way and still
|
||
|
kept advancing. It was drawing on to sundown when I met a stout,
|
||
|
dark, sour-looking woman coming trudging down a hill; and she,
|
||
|
when I had put my usual question, turned sharp about,
|
||
|
accompanied me back to the summit she had just left, and pointed
|
||
|
to a great bulk of building standing very bare upon a green in
|
||
|
the bottom of the next valley. The country was pleasant round
|
||
|
about, running in low hills, pleasantly watered and wooded, and
|
||
|
the crops, to my eyes, wonderfully good; but the house itself
|
||
|
appeared to be a kind of ruin; no road led up to it; no smoke
|
||
|
arose from any of the chimneys; nor was there any semblance of
|
||
|
a garden. My heart sank. "That!" I cried.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The woman's face lit up with a malignant anger. "That is
|
||
|
the house of Shaws!" she cried." Blood built it; blood stopped
|
||
|
the building of it; blood shall bring it down. See here!" she
|
||
|
cried again -- "I spit upon the ground, and crack my thumb at
|
||
|
it! Black be its fall! If ye see the laird, tell him what ye
|
||
|
hear; tell him this makes the twelve hunner and nineteen time
|
||
|
that Jennet Clouston has called down the curse on him and his
|
||
|
house, byre and stable, man, guest, and master, wife, miss, or
|
||
|
bairn -- black, black be their fall!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
And the woman, whose voice had risen to a kind of eldritch
|
||
|
sing-song, turned with a skip, and was gone. I stood where she
|
||
|
left me, with my hair on end. In those days folk still believed
|
||
|
in witches and trembled at a curse; and this one, falling so
|
||
|
pat, like a wayside omen, to arrest me ere I carried out my
|
||
|
purpose, took the pith out of my legs. I sat me down and stared
|
||
|
at the house of Shaws. The more I looked, the pleasanter that
|
||
|
country-side appeared; being all set with hawthorn bushes full
|
||
|
of flowers; the fields dotted with sheep; a fine flight of rooks
|
||
|
in the sky; and every sign of a kind soil and climate; and yet
|
||
|
the barrack in the midst of it went sore against my fancy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Country folk went by from the fields as I sat there on the
|
||
|
side of the ditch, but I lacked the spirit to give them a
|
||
|
good-e'en. At last the sun went down, and then, right up against
|
||
|
the yellow sky, I saw a scroll of smoke go mounting, not much
|
||
|
thicker, as it seemed to me, than the smoke of a candle; but
|
||
|
still there it was, and meant a fire, and warmth, and cookery,
|
||
|
and some living inhabitant that must have lit it; and this
|
||
|
comforted my heart.
|
||
|
|
||
|
So I set forward by a little faint track in the grass that
|
||
|
led in my direction. It was very faint indeed to be the only way
|
||
|
to a place of habitation; yet I saw no other. Presently it
|
||
|
brought me to stone uprights, with an unroofed lodge beside
|
||
|
them, and coats of arms upon the top. A main entrance it was
|
||
|
plainly meant to be, but never finished; instead of gates of
|
||
|
wrought iron, a pair of hurdles were tied across with a straw
|
||
|
rope; and as there were no park walls, nor any sign of avenue,
|
||
|
the track that I was following passed on the right hand of the
|
||
|
pillars, and went wandering on toward the house.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The nearer I got to that, the drearier it appeared. It
|
||
|
seemed like the one wing of a house that had never been
|
||
|
finished. What should have been the inner end stood open on the
|
||
|
upper floors, and showed against the sky with steps and stairs
|
||
|
of uncompleted masonry. Many of the windows were unglazed, and
|
||
|
bats flew in and out like doves out of a dove-cote.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The night had begun to fall as I got close; and in three of
|
||
|
the lower windows, which were very high up and narrow, and well
|
||
|
barred, the changing light of a little fire began to glimmer.
|
||
|
Was this the palace I had been coming to? Was it within these
|
||
|
walls that I was to seek new friends and begin great fortunes?
|
||
|
Why, in my father's house on Essen-Waterside, the fire and the
|
||
|
bright lights would show a mile away, and the door open to a
|
||
|
beggar's knock!
|
||
|
|
||
|
I came forward cautiously, and giving ear as I came, heard
|
||
|
some one rattling with dishes, and a little dry, eager cough
|
||
|
that came in fits; but there was no sound of speech, and not a
|
||
|
dog barked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The door, as well as I could see it in the dim light, was
|
||
|
a great piece of wood all studded with nails; and I lifted my
|
||
|
hand with a faint heart under my jacket, and knocked once. Then
|
||
|
I stood and waited. The house had fallen into a dead silence; a
|
||
|
whole minute passed away, and nothing stirred but the bats
|
||
|
overhead. I knocked again, and hearkened again. By this time my
|
||
|
ears had grown so accustomed to the quiet, that I could hear the
|
||
|
ticking of the clock inside as it slowly counted out the
|
||
|
seconds; but whoever was in that house kept deadly still, and
|
||
|
must have held his breath.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was in two minds whether to run away; but anger got the
|
||
|
upper hand, and I began instead to rain kicks and buffets on the
|
||
|
door, and to shout out aloud for Mr. Balfour. I was in full
|
||
|
career, when I heard the cough right overhead, and jumping back
|
||
|
and looking up, beheld a man's head in a tall nightcap, and the
|
||
|
bell mouth of a blunderbuss, at one of the first-storey windows.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's loaded," said a voice.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have come here with a letter," I said, "to Mr. Ebenezer
|
||
|
Balfour of Shaws. Is he here?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"From whom is it?" asked the man with the blunderbuss.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is neither here nor there," said I, for I was growing
|
||
|
very wroth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," was the reply, "ye can put it down upon the
|
||
|
doorstep, and be off with ye."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I will do no such thing," I cried. "I will deliver it into
|
||
|
Mr. Balfour's hands, as it was meant I should. It is a letter of
|
||
|
introduction."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A what?" cried the voice, sharply.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I repeated what I had said.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Who are ye, yourself?" was the next question, after a
|
||
|
considerable pause.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am not ashamed of my name," said I. "They call me David
|
||
|
Balfour."
|
||
|
|
||
|
At that, I made sure the man started, for I heard the
|
||
|
blunderbuss rattle on the window-sill; and it was after quite a
|
||
|
long pause, and with a curious change of voice, that the next
|
||
|
question followed: "Is your father dead?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was so much surprised at this, that I could find no
|
||
|
voice to answer, but stood staring.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay" the man resumed, "he'll be dead, no doubt; and that'll
|
||
|
be what brings ye chapping to my door." Another pause, and then
|
||
|
defiantly, "Well, man," he said, "I'll let ye in;" and he
|
||
|
disappeared from the window.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER III
|
||
|
I MAKE ACQUAINTANCE OF MY UNCLE
|
||
|
|
||
|
PRESENTLY there came a great rattling of chains and bolts, and
|
||
|
the door was cautiously opened and shut to again behind me as
|
||
|
soon as I had passed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Go into the kitchen and touch naething," said the voice;
|
||
|
and while the person of the house set himself to replacing the
|
||
|
defences of the door, I groped my way forward and entered the
|
||
|
kitchen.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The fire had burned up fairly bright, and showed me the
|
||
|
barest room I think I ever put my eyes on. Half-a-dozen dishes
|
||
|
stood upon the shelves; the table was laid for supper with a
|
||
|
bowl of porridge, a horn spoon, and a cup of small beer. Besides
|
||
|
what I have named, there was not another thing in that great,
|
||
|
stone-vaulted, empty chamber but lockfast chests arranged along
|
||
|
the wall and a corner cupboard with a padlock.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As soon as the last chain was up, the man rejoined me. He
|
||
|
was a mean, stooping, narrow-shouldered, clay-faced creature;
|
||
|
and his age might have been anything between fifty and seventy.
|
||
|
His nightcap was of flannel, and so was the nightgown that he
|
||
|
wore, instead of coat and waistcoat, over his ragged shirt. He
|
||
|
was long unshaved; but what most distressed and even daunted me,
|
||
|
he would neither take his eyes away from me nor look me fairly
|
||
|
in the face. What he was, whether by trade or birth, was more
|
||
|
than I could fathom; but he seemed most like an old,
|
||
|
unprofitable serving-man, who should have been left in charge of
|
||
|
that big house upon board wages.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Are ye sharp-set?" he asked, glancing at about the level
|
||
|
of my knee. "Ye can eat that drop parritch?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I said I feared it was his own supper.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"O," said he, "I can do fine wanting it. I'll take the ale,
|
||
|
though, for it slockens[1] my cough." He drank the cup about
|
||
|
half out, still keeping an eye upon me as he drank; and then
|
||
|
suddenly held out his hand. "Let's see the letter," said he.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I told him the letter was for Mr. Balfour; not for him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And who do ye think I am?" says he. "Give me Alexander's
|
||
|
letter."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You know my father's name?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It would be strange if I didnae," he returned, "for he was
|
||
|
my born brother; and little as ye seem to like either me or my
|
||
|
house, or my good parritch, I'm your born uncle, Davie, my man,
|
||
|
and you my born nephew. So give us the letter, and sit down and
|
||
|
fill your kyte."
|
||
|
|
||
|
If I had been some years younger, what with shame,
|
||
|
weariness, and disappointment, I believe I had burst into tears.
|
||
|
As it was, I could find no words, neither black nor white, but
|
||
|
handed him the letter, and sat down to the porridge with as
|
||
|
little appetite for meat as ever a young man had.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Meanwhile, my uncle, stooping over the fire, turned the
|
||
|
letter over and over in his hands.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do ye ken what's in it?" he asked, suddenly. "You see for
|
||
|
yourself, sir," said I, "that the seal has not been broken."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay," said he, "but what brought you here?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To give the letter," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No," says he, cunningly, "but ye'll have had some hopes,
|
||
|
nae doubt?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I confess, sir," said I, "when I was told that I had
|
||
|
kinsfolk well-to-do, I did indeed indulge the hope that they
|
||
|
might help me in my life. But I am no beggar; I look for no
|
||
|
favours at your hands, and I want none that are not freely
|
||
|
given. For as poor as I appear, I have friends of my own that
|
||
|
will be blithe to help me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hoot-toot!" said Uncle Ebenezer, "dinnae fly up in the
|
||
|
snuff at me. We'll agree fine yet. And, Davie, my man, if you're
|
||
|
done with that bit parritch, I could just take a sup of it
|
||
|
myself. Ay," he continued, as soon as he had ousted me from the
|
||
|
stool and spoon, "they're fine, halesome food -- they're grand
|
||
|
food, parritch." He murmured a little grace to himself and fell
|
||
|
to. "Your father was very fond of his meat, I mind; he was a
|
||
|
hearty, if not a great eater; but as for me, I could never do
|
||
|
mair than pyke at food." He took a pull at the small beer, which
|
||
|
probably reminded him of hospitable duties, for his next speech
|
||
|
ran thus: "If ye're dry ye'll find water behind the door."
|
||
|
|
||
|
To this I returned no answer, standing stiffly on my two
|
||
|
feet, and looking down upon my uncle with a mighty angry heart.
|
||
|
He, on his part, continued to eat like a man under some pressure
|
||
|
of time, and to throw out little darting glances now at my shoes
|
||
|
and now at my home-spun stockings. Once only, when he had
|
||
|
ventured to look a little higher, our eyes met; and no thief
|
||
|
taken with a hand in a man's pocket could have shown more lively
|
||
|
signals of distress. This set me in a muse, whether his timidity
|
||
|
arose from too long a disuse of any human company; and whether
|
||
|
perhaps, upon a little trial, it might pass off, and my uncle
|
||
|
change into an altogether different man. From this I was
|
||
|
awakened by his sharp voice.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your father's been long dead?" he asked."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Three weeks, sir," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He was a secret man, Alexander -- a secret, silent man,"
|
||
|
he continued. "He never said muckle when he was young. He'll
|
||
|
never have spoken muckle of me?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I never knew, sir, till you told it me yourself, that he
|
||
|
had any brother."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Dear me, dear me!" said Ebenezer. "Nor yet of Shaws, I
|
||
|
dare say?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not so much as the name, sir," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To think o' that!" said he. "A strange nature of a man!"
|
||
|
For all that, he seemed singularly satisfied, but whether with
|
||
|
himself, or me, or with this conduct of my father's, was more
|
||
|
than I could read. Certainly, however, he seemed to be
|
||
|
outgrowing that distaste, or ill-will, that he had conceived at
|
||
|
first against my person; for presently he jumped up, came across
|
||
|
the room behind me, and hit me a smack upon the shoulder. "We'll
|
||
|
agree fine yet!" he cried. "I'm just as glad I let you in. And
|
||
|
now come awa' to your bed."
|
||
|
|
||
|
To my surprise, he lit no lamp or candle, but set forth
|
||
|
into the dark passage, groped his way, breathing deeply, up a
|
||
|
flight of steps, and paused before a door, which he unlocked. I
|
||
|
was close upon his heels, having stumbled after him as best I
|
||
|
might; and then he bade me go in, for that was my chamber. I did
|
||
|
as he bid, but paused after a few steps, and begged a light to
|
||
|
go to bed with.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hoot-toot." said Uncle Ebenezer, "there's a fine moon."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Neither moon nor star, sir, and pit-mirk,"[2] said I. "I
|
||
|
cannae see the bed."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hoot-toot, hoot-toot!" said he. "Lights in a house is a
|
||
|
thing I dinnae agree with. I'm unco feared of fires. Good-night
|
||
|
to ye, Davie, my man." And before I had time to add a further
|
||
|
protest, he pulled the door to, and I heard him lock me in from
|
||
|
the outside.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I did not know whether to laugh or cry. The room was as
|
||
|
cold as a well, and the bed, when I had found my way to it, as
|
||
|
damp as a peat-hag; but by good fortune I had caught up my
|
||
|
bundle and my plaid, and rolling myself in the latter, I lay
|
||
|
down upon the floor under lee of the big bedstead, and fell
|
||
|
speedily asleep.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With the first peep of day I opened my eyes, to find myself
|
||
|
in a great chamber, hung with stamped leather, furnished with
|
||
|
fine embroidered furniture, and lit by three fair windows. Ten
|
||
|
years ago, or perhaps twenty, it must have been as pleasant a
|
||
|
room to lie down or to awake in as a man could wish; but damp,
|
||
|
dirt, disuse, and the mice and spiders had done their worst
|
||
|
since then. Many of the window-panes, besides, were broken; and
|
||
|
indeed this was so common a feature in that house, that I
|
||
|
believe my uncle must at some time have stood a siege from his
|
||
|
indignant neighbours perhaps with Jennet Clouston at their head.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Meanwhile the sun was shining outside; and being very cold
|
||
|
in that miserable room, I knocked and shouted till my gaoler
|
||
|
came and let me out. He carried me to the back of the house,
|
||
|
where was a draw-well, and told me to "wash my face there, if I
|
||
|
wanted;" and when that was done, I made the best of my own way
|
||
|
back to the kitchen, where he had lit the fire and was making
|
||
|
the porridge. The table was laid with two bowls and two horn
|
||
|
spoons, but the same single measure of small beer. Perhaps my
|
||
|
eye rested on this particular with some surprise, and perhaps my
|
||
|
uncle observed it; for he spoke up as if in answer to my
|
||
|
thought, asking me if I would like to drink ale -- for so he
|
||
|
called it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I told him such was my habit, but not to put himself about.
|
||
|
"Na, na," said he; "I'll deny you nothing in reason."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He fetched another cup from the shelf; and then, to my
|
||
|
great surprise, instead of drawing more beer, he poured an
|
||
|
accurate half from one cup to the other. There was a kind of
|
||
|
nobleness in this that took my breath away; if my uncle was
|
||
|
certainly a miser, he was one of that thorough breed that goes
|
||
|
near to make the vice respectable.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When we had made an end of our meal, my uncle Ebenezer
|
||
|
unlocked a drawer, and drew out of it a clay pipe and a lump of
|
||
|
tobacco, from which he cut one fill before he locked it up
|
||
|
again. Then he sat down in the sun at one of the windows and
|
||
|
silently smoked. From time to time his eyes came coasting round
|
||
|
to me, and he shot out one of his questions. Once it was, "And
|
||
|
your mother?" and when I had told him that she, too, was dead,
|
||
|
"Ay, she was a bonnie lassie!" Then, after another long pause,
|
||
|
"Whae were these friends o' yours?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I told him they were different gentlemen of the name of
|
||
|
Campbell; though, indeed, there was only one, and that the
|
||
|
minister, that had ever taken the least note of me; but I began
|
||
|
to think my uncle made too light of my position, and finding
|
||
|
myself all alone with him, I did not wish him to suppose me
|
||
|
helpless.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He seemed to turn this over in his mind; and then, "Davie,
|
||
|
my man," said he, "ye've come to the right bit when ye came to
|
||
|
your uncle Ebenezer. I've a great notion of the family, and I
|
||
|
mean to do the right by you; but while I'm taking a bit think to
|
||
|
mysel' of what's the best thing to put you to -- whether the
|
||
|
law, or the meenistry, or maybe the army, whilk is what boys are
|
||
|
fondest of -- I wouldnae like the Balfours to be humbled before
|
||
|
a wheen Hieland Campbells, and I'll ask you to keep your tongue
|
||
|
within your teeth. Nae letters; nae messages; no kind of word to
|
||
|
onybody; or else -- there's my door."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Uncle Ebenezer," said I, "I've no manner of reason to
|
||
|
suppose you mean anything but well by me. For all that, I would
|
||
|
have you to know that I have a pride of my own. It was by no
|
||
|
will of mine that I came seeking you; and if you show me your
|
||
|
door again, I'll take you at the word."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He seemed grievously put out. "Hoots-toots," said he, "ca'
|
||
|
cannie, man -- ca' cannie! Bide a day or two. I'm nae warlock,
|
||
|
to find a fortune for you in the bottom of a parritch bowl; but
|
||
|
just you give me a day or two, and say naething to naebody, and
|
||
|
as sure as sure, I'll do the right by you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Very well," said I, "enough said. If you want to help me,
|
||
|
there's no doubt but I'll be glad of it, and none but I'll be
|
||
|
grateful."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It seemed to me (too soon, I dare say) that I was getting
|
||
|
the upper hand of my uncle; and I began next to say that I must
|
||
|
have the bed and bedclothes aired and put to sun-dry; for
|
||
|
nothing would make me sleep in such a pickle."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Is this my house or yours?" said he, in his keen voice, and
|
||
|
then all of a sudden broke off. "Na, na," said he, "I didnae
|
||
|
mean that. What's mine is yours, Davie, my man, and what's yours
|
||
|
is mine. Blood's thicker than water; and there's naebody but you
|
||
|
and me that ought the name." And then on he rambled about the
|
||
|
family, and its ancient greatness, and his father that began to
|
||
|
enlarge the house, and himself that stopped the building as a
|
||
|
sinful waste; and this put it in my head to give him Jennet
|
||
|
Clouston's message.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The limmer." he cried. "Twelve hunner and fifteen --
|
||
|
that's every day since I had the limmer rowpit![3] Dod, David,
|
||
|
I'll have her roasted on red peats before I'm by with it! A
|
||
|
witch -- a proclaimed witch! I'll aff and see the session
|
||
|
clerk."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And with that he opened a chest, and got out a very old and
|
||
|
well-preserved blue coat and waistcoat, and a good enough beaver
|
||
|
hat, both without lace. These he threw on any way, and taking a
|
||
|
staff from the cupboard, locked all up again, and was for
|
||
|
setting out, when a thought arrested him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I cannae leave you by yoursel' in the house," said he.
|
||
|
"I'll have to lock you out."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The blood came to my face. "If you lock me out," I said,
|
||
|
"it'll be the last you'll see of me in friendship."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He turned very pale, and sucked his mouth in."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This is no the, way" he said, looking wickedly at a corner
|
||
|
of the floor -- "this is no the way to win my favour, David."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sir," says I, "with a proper reverence for your age and
|
||
|
our common blood, I do not value your favour at a boddle's
|
||
|
purchase. I was brought up to have a good conceit of myself; and
|
||
|
if you were all the uncle, and all the family, I had in the
|
||
|
world ten times over, I wouldn't buy your liking at such
|
||
|
prices."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Uncle Ebenezer went and looked out of the window for
|
||
|
awhile. I could see him all trembling and twitching, like a man
|
||
|
with palsy. But when he turned round, he had a smile upon his
|
||
|
face.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, well," said he, "we must bear and forbear. I'll no
|
||
|
go; that's all that's to be said of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Uncle Ebenezer," I said, "I can make nothing out of this.
|
||
|
You use me like a thief; you hate to have me in this house; you
|
||
|
let me see it, every word and every minute: it's not possible
|
||
|
that you can like me; and as for me, I've spoken to you as I
|
||
|
never thought to speak to any man. Why do you seek to keep me,
|
||
|
then? Let me gang back -- let me gang back to the friends I
|
||
|
have, and that like me!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Na, na; na, na," he said, very earnestly. "I like you
|
||
|
fine; we'll agree fine yet; and for the honour of the house I
|
||
|
couldnae let you leave the way ye came. Bide here quiet, there's
|
||
|
a good lad; just you bide here quiet a bittie, and ye'll find
|
||
|
that we agree."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, sir," said I, after I had thought the matter out in
|
||
|
silence, "I'll stay awhile. It's more just I should be helped by
|
||
|
my own blood than strangers; and if we don't agree, I'll do my
|
||
|
best it shall be through no fault of mine."
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] Moistens.
|
||
|
[2] Dark as the pit.
|
||
|
[3] Sold up.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER IV
|
||
|
I RUN A GREAT DANGER IN THE HOUSE OF SHAWS
|
||
|
|
||
|
FOR a day that was begun so ill, the day passed fairly well. We
|
||
|
had the porridge cold again at noon, and hot porridge at night;
|
||
|
porridge and small beer was my uncle's diet. He spoke but
|
||
|
little, and that in the same way as before, shooting a question
|
||
|
at me after a long silence; and when I sought to lead him to
|
||
|
talk about my future, slipped out of it again. In a room next
|
||
|
door to the kitchen, where he suffered me to go, I found a great
|
||
|
number of books, both Latin and English, in which I took great
|
||
|
pleasure all the afternoon. Indeed, the time passed so lightly
|
||
|
in this good company, that I began to be almost reconciled to my
|
||
|
residence at Shaws; and nothing but the sight of my uncle, and
|
||
|
his eyes playing hide and seek with mine, revived the force of
|
||
|
my distrust.
|
||
|
|
||
|
One thing I discovered, which put me in some doubt. This
|
||
|
was an entry on the fly-leaf of a chap-book (one of Patrick
|
||
|
Walker's) plainly written by my father's hand and thus
|
||
|
conceived:" To my brother Ebenezer on his fifth birthday" Now,
|
||
|
what puzzled me was this: That, as my father was of course the
|
||
|
younger brother, he must either have made some strange error, or
|
||
|
he must have written, before he was yet five, an excellent,
|
||
|
clear manly hand of writing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I tried to get this out of my head; but though I took down
|
||
|
many interesting authors, old and new, history, poetry, and
|
||
|
story-book, this notion of my father's hand of writing stuck to
|
||
|
me; and when at length I went back into the kitchen, and sat
|
||
|
down once more to porridge and small beer, the first thing I
|
||
|
said to Uncle Ebenezer was to ask him if my father had not been
|
||
|
very quick at his book.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Alexander? No him!" was the reply. "I was far quicker
|
||
|
mysel'; I was a clever chappie when I was young. Why, I could
|
||
|
read as soon as he could."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This puzzled me yet more; and a thought coming into my
|
||
|
head, I asked if he and my father had been twins.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He jumped upon his stool, and the horn spoon fell out of
|
||
|
his hand upon the floor. "What gars ye ask that?" he said, and
|
||
|
he caught me by the breast of the jacket, and looked this time
|
||
|
straight into my eyes: his own were little and light, and bright
|
||
|
like a bird's, blinking and winking strangely.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do you mean?" I asked, very calmly, for I was far
|
||
|
stronger than he, and not easily frightened. "Take your hand
|
||
|
from my jacket. This is no way to behave."
|
||
|
|
||
|
My uncle seemed to make a great effort upon himself. "Dod
|
||
|
man, David," he said, "ye shouldnae speak to me about your
|
||
|
father. That's where the mistake is." He sat awhile and shook,
|
||
|
blinking in his plate:" He was all the brother that ever I had,"
|
||
|
he added, but with no heart in his voice; and then he caught up
|
||
|
his spoon and fell to supper again, but still shaking.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now this last passage, this laying of hands upon my person
|
||
|
and sudden profession of love for my dead father, went so clean
|
||
|
beyond my comprehension that it put me into both fear and hope.
|
||
|
On the one hand, I began to think my uncle was perhaps insane
|
||
|
and might be dangerous; on the other, there came up into my mind
|
||
|
(quite unbidden by me and even discouraged) a story like some
|
||
|
ballad I had heard folk singing, of a poor lad that was a
|
||
|
rightful heir and a wicked kinsman that tried to keep him from
|
||
|
his own. For why should my uncle play a part with a relative
|
||
|
that came, almost a beggar, to his door, unless in his heart he
|
||
|
had some cause to fear him?
|
||
|
|
||
|
With this notion, all unacknowledged, but nevertheless
|
||
|
getting firmly settled in my head, I now began to imitate his
|
||
|
covert looks; so that we sat at table like a cat and a mouse,
|
||
|
each stealthily observing the other. Not another word had he to
|
||
|
say to me, black or white, but was busy turning something
|
||
|
secretly over in his mind; and the longer we sat and the more I
|
||
|
looked at him, the more certain I became that the something was
|
||
|
unfriendly to myself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When he had cleared the platter, he got out a single
|
||
|
pipeful of tobacco, just as in the morning, turned round a stool
|
||
|
into the chimney corner, and sat awhile smoking, with his back
|
||
|
to me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Davie," he said, at length, "I've been thinking;" then he
|
||
|
paused, and said it again. "There's a wee bit siller that I half
|
||
|
promised ye before ye were born," he continued; "promised it to
|
||
|
your father. O, naething legal, ye understand; just gentlemen
|
||
|
daffing at their wine. Well, I keepit that bit money separate --
|
||
|
it was a great expense, but a promise is a promise -- and it has
|
||
|
grown by now to be a matter of just precisely -- just exactly"
|
||
|
-- and here he paused and stumbled -- "of just exactly forty
|
||
|
pounds!" This last he rapped out with a sidelong glance over his
|
||
|
shoulder; and the next moment added, almost with a scream,
|
||
|
"Scots!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The pound Scots being the same thing as an English
|
||
|
shilling, the difference made by this second thought was
|
||
|
considerable; I could see, besides, that the whole story was a
|
||
|
lie, invented with some end which it puzzled me to guess; and I
|
||
|
made no attempt to conceal the tone of raillery in which I
|
||
|
answered"
|
||
|
|
||
|
O, think again, sir Pounds sterling, I believe!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That's what I said," returned my uncle: "pounds sterling!
|
||
|
And if you'll step out-by to the door a minute, just to see what
|
||
|
kind of a night it is, I'll get it out to ye and call ye in
|
||
|
again."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I did his will, smiling to myself in my contempt that he
|
||
|
should think I was so easily to be deceived. It was a dark
|
||
|
night, with a few stars low down; and as I stood just outside
|
||
|
the door, I heard a hollow moaning of wind far off among the
|
||
|
hills. I said to myself there was something thundery and
|
||
|
changeful in the weather, and little knew of what a vast
|
||
|
importance that should prove to me before the evening passed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I was called in again, my uncle counted out into my
|
||
|
hand seven and thirty golden guinea pieces; the rest was in his
|
||
|
hand, in small gold and silver; but his heart failed him there,
|
||
|
and he crammed the change into his pocket.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There," said he, "that'll show you! I'm a queer man, and
|
||
|
strange wi' strangers; but my word is my bond, and there's the
|
||
|
proof of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now, my uncle seemed so miserly that I was struck dumb by
|
||
|
this sudden generosity, and could find no words in which to
|
||
|
thank him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No a word!" said he. "Nae thanks; I want nae thanks. I do
|
||
|
my duty. I'm no saying that everybody would have, done it; but
|
||
|
for my part (though I'm a careful body, too) it's a pleasure to
|
||
|
me to do the right by my brother's son; and it's a pleasure to
|
||
|
me to think that now we'll agree as such near friends should."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I spoke him in return as handsomely as I was able; but all
|
||
|
the while I was wondering what would come next, and why he had
|
||
|
parted with his precious guineas; for as to the reason he had
|
||
|
given, a baby would have refused it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently he looked towards me sideways.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And see here," says he, "tit for tat."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I told him I was ready to prove my gratitude in any
|
||
|
reasonable degree, and then waited, looking for some monstrous
|
||
|
demand. And yet, when at last he plucked up courage to speak, it
|
||
|
was only to tell me (very properly, as I thought) that he was
|
||
|
growing old and a little broken, and that he would expect me to
|
||
|
help him with the house and the bit garden.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I answered, and expressed my readiness to serve.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," he said, "let's begin." He pulled out of his pocket
|
||
|
a rusty key. "There," says he, "there's the key of the
|
||
|
stair-tower at the far end of the house. Ye can only win into it
|
||
|
from the outside, for that part of the house is no finished.
|
||
|
Gang ye in there, and up the stairs, and bring me down the chest
|
||
|
that's at the top. There's papers in't," he added.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Can I have a light, sir?" said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Na," said he, very cunningly. "Nae lights in my house."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Very well, sir," said I. "Are the stairs good?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They're grand," said he; and then, as I was going, "Keep
|
||
|
to the wall," he added; "there's nae bannisters. But the stairs
|
||
|
are grand underfoot."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Out I went into the night. The wind was still moaning in
|
||
|
the distance, though never a breath of it came near the house of
|
||
|
Shaws. It had fallen blacker than ever; and I was glad to feel
|
||
|
along the wall, till I came the length of the stairtower door at
|
||
|
the far end of the unfinished wing. I had got the key into the
|
||
|
keyhole and had just turned it, when all upon a sudden, without
|
||
|
sound of wind or thunder, the whole sky lighted up with wild
|
||
|
fire and went black again. I had to put my hand over my eyes to
|
||
|
get back to the colour of the darkness; and indeed I was already
|
||
|
half blinded when I stepped into the tower.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was so dark inside, it seemed a body could scarce
|
||
|
breathe; but I pushed out with foot and hand, and presently
|
||
|
struck the wall with the one, and the lowermost round of the
|
||
|
stair with the other. The wall, by the touch, was of fine hewn
|
||
|
stone; the steps too, though somewhat steep and narrow, were of
|
||
|
polished masonwork, and regular and solid underfoot. Minding my
|
||
|
uncle's word about the bannisters, I kept close to the tower
|
||
|
side, and felt my way in the pitch darkness with a beating
|
||
|
heart.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The house of Shaws stood some five full storeys high, not
|
||
|
counting lofts. Well, as I advanced, it seemed to me the stair
|
||
|
grew airier and a thought more lightsome; and I was wondering
|
||
|
what might be the cause of this change, when a second blink of
|
||
|
the summer lightning came and went. If I did not cry out, it was
|
||
|
because fear had me by the throat; and if I did not fall, it was
|
||
|
more by Heaven's mercy than my own strength. It was not only
|
||
|
that the flash shone in on every side through breaches in the
|
||
|
wall, so that I seemed to be clambering aloft upon an open
|
||
|
scaffold, but the same passing brightness showed me the steps
|
||
|
were of unequal length, and that one of my feet rested that
|
||
|
moment within two inches of the well.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was the grand stair! I thought; and with the thought,
|
||
|
a gust of a kind of angry courage came into my heart. My uncle
|
||
|
had sent me here, certainly to run great risks, perhaps to die.
|
||
|
I swore I would settle that "perhaps," if I should break my neck
|
||
|
for it; got me down upon my hands and knees; and as slowly as a
|
||
|
snail, feeling before me every inch, and testing the solidity of
|
||
|
every stone, I continued to ascend the stair. The darkness, by
|
||
|
contrast with the flash, appeared to have redoubled; nor was
|
||
|
that all, for my ears were now troubled and my mind confounded
|
||
|
by a great stir of bats in the top part of the tower, and the
|
||
|
foul beasts, flying downwards, sometimes beat about my face and
|
||
|
body.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The tower, I should have said, was square; and in every
|
||
|
corner the step was made of a great stone of a different shape
|
||
|
to join the flights. Well, I had come close to one of these
|
||
|
turns, when, feeling forward as usual, my hand slipped upon an
|
||
|
edge and found nothing but emptiness beyond it. The stair had
|
||
|
been carried no higher; to set a stranger mounting it in the
|
||
|
darkness was to send him straight to his death; and (although,
|
||
|
thanks to the lightning and my own precautions, I was safe
|
||
|
enough) the mere thought of the peril in which I might have
|
||
|
stood, and the dreadful height I might have fallen from, brought
|
||
|
out the sweat upon my body and relaxed my joints.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But I knew what I wanted now, and turned and groped my way
|
||
|
down again, with a wonderful anger in my heart. About half-way
|
||
|
down, the wind sprang up in a clap and shook the tower, and died
|
||
|
again; the rain followed; and before I had reached the ground
|
||
|
level it fell in buckets. I put out my head into the storm, and
|
||
|
looked along towards the kitchen. The door, which I had shut
|
||
|
behind me when I left, now stood open, and shed a little glimmer
|
||
|
of light; and I thought I could see a figure standing in the
|
||
|
rain, quite still, like a man hearkening. And then there came a
|
||
|
blinding flash, which showed me my uncle plainly, just where I
|
||
|
had fancied him to stand; and hard upon the heels of it, a great
|
||
|
tow-row of thunder.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now, whether my uncle thought the crash to be the sound of
|
||
|
my fall, or whether he heard in it God's voice denouncing
|
||
|
murder, I will leave you to guess. Certain it is, at least, that
|
||
|
he was seized on by a kind of panic fear, and that he ran into
|
||
|
the house and left the door open behind him. I followed as
|
||
|
softly as I could, and, coming unheard into the kitchen, stood
|
||
|
and watched him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He had found time to open the corner cupboard and bring out
|
||
|
a great case bottle of aqua vitae, and now sat with his back
|
||
|
towards me at the table. Ever and again he would be seized with
|
||
|
a fit of deadly shuddering and groan aloud, and carrying the
|
||
|
bottle to his lips, drink down the raw spirits by the mouthful.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I stepped forward, came close behind him where he sat, and
|
||
|
suddenly clapping my two hands down upon his shoulders --"Ah!"
|
||
|
cried I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My uncle gave a kind of broken cry like a sheep's bleat,
|
||
|
flung up his arms, and tumbled to the floor like a dead man. I
|
||
|
was somewhat shocked at this; but I had myself to look to first
|
||
|
of all, and did not hesitate to let him lie as he had fallen.
|
||
|
The keys were hanging in the cupboard; and it was my design to
|
||
|
furnish myself with arms before my uncle should come again to
|
||
|
his senses and the power of devising evil. In the cupboard were
|
||
|
a few bottles, some apparently of medicine; a great many bills
|
||
|
and other papers, which I should willingly enough have rummaged,
|
||
|
had I had the time; and a few necessaries that were nothing to
|
||
|
my purpose. Thence I turned to the chests. The first was full of
|
||
|
meal; the second of moneybags and papers tied into sheaves; in
|
||
|
the third, with many other things (and these for the most part
|
||
|
clothes) I found a rusty, ugly-looking Highland dirk without the
|
||
|
scabbard. This, then, I concealed inside my waistcoat, and
|
||
|
turned to my uncle.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He lay as he had fallen, all huddled, with one knee up and
|
||
|
one arm sprawling abroad; his face had a strange colour of blue,
|
||
|
and he seemed to have ceased breathing. Fear came on me that he
|
||
|
was dead; then I got water and dashed it in his face; and with
|
||
|
that he seemed to come a little to himself, working his mouth
|
||
|
and fluttering his eyelids. At last he looked up and saw me, and
|
||
|
there came into his eyes a terror that was not of this world.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come, come," said I; "sit up."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Are ye alive?" he sobbed. "O man, are ye alive?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That am I," said I. "Small thanks to you!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He had begun to seek for his breath with deep sighs. "The
|
||
|
blue phial," said he -- "in the aumry -- the blue phial." His
|
||
|
breath came slower still.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I ran to the cupboard, and, sure enough, found there a blue
|
||
|
phial of medicine, with the dose written on it on a paper, and
|
||
|
this I administered to him with what speed I might.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's the trouble," said he, reviving a little; "I have a
|
||
|
trouble, Davie. It's the heart."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I set him on a chair and looked at him. It is true I felt
|
||
|
some pity for a man that looked so sick, but I was full besides
|
||
|
of righteous anger; and I numbered over before him the points on
|
||
|
which I wanted explanation: why he lied to me at every word; why
|
||
|
he feared that I should leave him; why he disliked it to be
|
||
|
hinted that he and my father were twins "Is that because it is
|
||
|
true?" I asked; why he had given me money to which I was
|
||
|
convinced I had no claim; and, last of all, why he had tried to
|
||
|
kill me. He heard me all through in silence; and then, in a
|
||
|
broken voice, begged me to let him go to bed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I'll tell ye the morn," he said; "as sure as death I
|
||
|
will."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And so weak was he that I could do nothing but consent. I
|
||
|
locked him into his room, however, and pocketed the, key, and
|
||
|
then returning to the kitchen, made up such a blaze as had not
|
||
|
shone there for many a long year, and wrapping myself in my
|
||
|
plaid, lay down upon the chests and fell asleep.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER V
|
||
|
I GO TO THE QUEEN'S FERRY
|
||
|
|
||
|
MUCH rain fell in the night; and the next morning there blew a
|
||
|
bitter wintry wind out of the north-west, driving scattered
|
||
|
clouds. For all that, and before the sun began to peep or the
|
||
|
last of the stars had vanished, I made my way to the side of the
|
||
|
burn, and had a plunge in a deep whirling pool. All aglow from
|
||
|
my bath, I sat down once more beside the fire, which I
|
||
|
replenished, and began gravely to consider my position.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was now no doubt about my uncle's enmity; there was
|
||
|
no doubt I carried my life in my hand, and he would leave no
|
||
|
stone unturned that he might compass my destruction. But I was
|
||
|
young and spirited, and like most lads that have been
|
||
|
country-bred, I had a great opinion of my shrewdness. I had come
|
||
|
to his door no better than a beggar and little more than a
|
||
|
child; he had met me with treachery and violence; it would be a
|
||
|
fine consummation to take the upper hand, and drive him like a
|
||
|
herd of sheep.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I sat there nursing my knee and smiling at the fire; and I
|
||
|
saw myself in fancy smell out his secrets one after another, and
|
||
|
grow to be that man's king and ruler. The warlock of Essendean,
|
||
|
they say, had made a mirror in which men could read the future;
|
||
|
it must have been of other stuff than burning coal; for in all
|
||
|
the shapes and pictures that I sat and gazed at, there was never
|
||
|
a ship, never a seaman with a hairy cap, never a big bludgeon
|
||
|
for my silly head, or the least sign of all those tribulations
|
||
|
that were ripe to fall on me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently, all swollen with conceit, I went up-stairs and
|
||
|
gave my prisoner his liberty. He gave me good-morning civilly;
|
||
|
and I gave the same to him, smiling down upon him, from the
|
||
|
heights of my sufficiency. Soon we were set to breakfast, as it
|
||
|
might have been the day before.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, sir," said I, with a jeering tone, "have you nothing
|
||
|
more to say to me?" And then, as he made no articulate reply,
|
||
|
"It will be time, I think, to understand each other," I
|
||
|
continued. "You took me for a country Johnnie Raw, with no more
|
||
|
mother-wit or courage than a porridge-stick. I took you for a
|
||
|
good man, or no worse than others at the least. It seems we were
|
||
|
both wrong. What cause you have to fear me, to cheat me, and to
|
||
|
attempt my life--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He murmured something about a jest, and that he liked a bit
|
||
|
of fun; and then, seeing me smile, changed his tone, and assured
|
||
|
me he would make all clear as soon as we had breakfasted. I saw
|
||
|
by his face that he had no lie ready for me, though he was hard
|
||
|
at work preparing one; and I think I was about to tell him so,
|
||
|
when we were interrupted by a knocking at the door.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Bidding my uncle sit where he was, I went to open it, and
|
||
|
found on the doorstep a half-grown boy in sea-clothes. He had no
|
||
|
sooner seen me than he began to dance some steps of the
|
||
|
sea-hornpipe (which I had never before heard of far less seen),
|
||
|
snapping his fingers in the air and footing it right cleverly.
|
||
|
For all that, he was blue with the cold; and there was something
|
||
|
in his face, a look between tears and laughter, that was highly
|
||
|
pathetic and consisted ill with this gaiety of manner.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What cheer, mate?" says he, with a cracked voice.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I asked him soberly to name his pleasure.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"O, pleasure!" says he; and then began to sing:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"For it's my delight, of a shiny night,
|
||
|
|
||
|
In the season of the year."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," said I, "if you have no business at all, I will
|
||
|
even be so unmannerly as to shut you out."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Stay, brother!" he cried." Have you no fun about you? or
|
||
|
do you want to get me thrashed? I've brought a letter from old
|
||
|
Heasyoasy to Mr. Belflower." He showed me a letter as he spoke."
|
||
|
And I say, mate," he added, "I'm mortal hungry."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," said I, "come into the house, and you shall have a
|
||
|
bite if I go empty for it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
With that I brought him in and set him down to my own
|
||
|
place, where he fell-to greedily on the remains of breakfast,
|
||
|
winking to me between whiles, and making many faces, which I
|
||
|
think the poor soul considered manly. Meanwhile, my uncle had
|
||
|
read the letter and sat thinking; then, suddenly, he got to his
|
||
|
feet with a great air of liveliness, and pulled me apart into
|
||
|
the farthest corner of the room.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Read that," said he, and put the letter in my hand.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here it is, lying before me as I write:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The Hawes Inn, at the Queen's Ferry.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sir, -- I lie here with my hawser up and down, and send my
|
||
|
cabin-boy to informe. If you have any further commands for
|
||
|
over-seas, to-day will be the last occasion, as the wind will
|
||
|
serve us well out of the firth I will not seek to deny that I
|
||
|
have had crosses with your doer,[1] Mr. Rankeillor. of which, if
|
||
|
not speedily redd up, you may looke to see some, losses follow
|
||
|
I have drawn a bill upon you, as per margin, and am, sir, your
|
||
|
most obedt., humble servant,
|
||
|
|
||
|
"ELIAS HOSEASON."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You see, Davie," resumed my uncle, as soon as he saw that
|
||
|
I had done, "I have a venture with this man Hoseason, the
|
||
|
captain of a trading brig, the Covenant, of Dysart. Now, if you
|
||
|
and me was to walk over with yon lad, I could see the captain at
|
||
|
the Hawes, or maybe on board the Covenant if there was papers to
|
||
|
be signed; and so far from a loss of time, we can jog on to the
|
||
|
lawyer, Mr. Rankeillor's. After a' that's come and gone, ye
|
||
|
would be swier[2] to believe me upon my naked word; but ye'll
|
||
|
believe Rankeillor. He's factor to half the gentry in these
|
||
|
parts; an auld man, forby: highly respeckit, and he kenned your
|
||
|
father."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I stood awhile and thought. I was going to some place of
|
||
|
shipping, which was doubtless populous, and where my uncle durst
|
||
|
attempt no violence, and, indeed, even the society of the
|
||
|
cabin-boy so far protected me. Once there, I believed I could
|
||
|
force on the visit to the lawyer, even if my uncle were now
|
||
|
insincere in proposing it; and, perhaps, in the bottom of my
|
||
|
heart, I wished a nearer view of the sea and ships. You are to
|
||
|
remember I had lived all my life in the inland hills, and just
|
||
|
two days before had my first sight of the firth lying like a
|
||
|
blue floor, and the sailed ships moving on the face of it, no
|
||
|
bigger than toys. One thing with another, I made up my mind.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Very well," says I, "let us go to the Ferry."
|
||
|
|
||
|
My uncle got into his hat and coat, and buckled an old
|
||
|
rusty cutlass on; and then we trod the fire out, locked the
|
||
|
door, and set forth upon our walk.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The wind, being in that cold quarter the north-west, blew
|
||
|
nearly in our faces as we went. It was the month of June; the
|
||
|
grass was all white with daisies, and the trees with blossom;
|
||
|
but, to judge by our blue nails and aching wrists, the time
|
||
|
might have been winter and the whiteness a December frost.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Uncle Ebenezer trudged in the ditch, jogging from side to
|
||
|
side like an old ploughman coming home from work. He never said
|
||
|
a word the whole way; and I was thrown for talk on the
|
||
|
cabin-boy. He told me his name was Ransome, and that he had
|
||
|
followed the sea since he was nine, but could not say how old he
|
||
|
was, as he had lost his reckoning. He showed me tattoo marks,
|
||
|
baring his breast in the teeth of the wind and in spite of my
|
||
|
remonstrances, for I thought it was enough to kill him; he swore
|
||
|
horribly whenever he remembered, but more like a silly schoolboy
|
||
|
than a man; and boasted of many wild and bad things that he had
|
||
|
done: stealthy thefts, false accusations, ay, and even murder;
|
||
|
but all with such a dearth of likelihood in the details, and
|
||
|
such a weak and crazy swagger in the delivery, as disposed me
|
||
|
rather to pity than to believe him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I asked him of the brig (which he declared was the finest
|
||
|
ship that sailed) and of Captain Hoseason, in whose praises he
|
||
|
was equally loud. Heasyoasy (for so he still named the skipper)
|
||
|
was a man, by his account, that minded for nothing either in
|
||
|
heaven or earth; one that, as people said, would "crack on all
|
||
|
sail into the day of judgment;" rough, fierce, unscrupulous, and
|
||
|
brutal; and all this my poor cabin-boy had taught himself to
|
||
|
admire as something seamanlike and manly. He would only admit
|
||
|
one flaw in his idol." He ain't no seaman," he admitted. "That's
|
||
|
Mr. Shuan that navigates the brig; he's the finest seaman in the
|
||
|
trade, only for drink; and I tell you I believe it! Why,
|
||
|
look'ere;" and turning down his stocking he showed me a great,
|
||
|
raw, red wound that made my blood run cold. "He done that -- Mr.
|
||
|
Shuan done it," he said, with an air of pride.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What!" I cried, "do you take such savage usage at his
|
||
|
hands? Why, you are no slave, to be so handled!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No," said the poor moon-calf, changing his tune at once,
|
||
|
"and so he'll find. See'ere;" and he showed me a great
|
||
|
case-knife, which he told me was stolen. "O," says he, "let me
|
||
|
see him, try; I dare him to; I'll do for him! O, he ain't the
|
||
|
first!" And he confirmed it with a poor, silly, ugly oath.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I have never felt such pity for any one in this wide world
|
||
|
as I felt for that half-witted creature, and it began to come
|
||
|
over me that the brig Covenant (for all her pious name) was
|
||
|
little better than a hell upon the seas.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Have you no friends?" said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He said he had a father in some English seaport, I forget
|
||
|
which. "He was a fine man, too," he said, "but he's dead."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In Heaven's name," cried I, "can you find no reputable
|
||
|
life on shore?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"O, no," says he, winking and looking very sly, "they would
|
||
|
put me to a trade. I know a trick worth two of that, I do!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I asked him what trade could be so dreadful as the one he
|
||
|
followed, where he ran the continual peril of his life, not
|
||
|
alone from wind and sea, but by the horrid cruelty of those who
|
||
|
were his masters. He said it was very true; and then began to
|
||
|
praise the life, and tell what a pleasure it was to get on shore
|
||
|
with money in his pocket, and spend it like a man, and buy
|
||
|
apples, and swagger, and surprise what he called
|
||
|
stick-in-the-mud boys. "And then it's not all as bad as that,"
|
||
|
says he; "there's worse off than me: there's the
|
||
|
twenty-pounders. O, laws! you should see them taking on. Why,
|
||
|
I've seen a man as old as you, I dessay" -- (to him I seemed
|
||
|
old)--" ah, and he had a beard, too -- well, and as soon as we
|
||
|
cleared out of the river, and he had the drug out of his head --
|
||
|
my! how he cried and carried on! I made a fine fool of him, I
|
||
|
tell you! And then there's little uns, too: oh, little by me! I
|
||
|
tell you, I keep them in order. When we carry little uns, I have
|
||
|
a rope's end of my own to wollop'em." And so he ran on, until it
|
||
|
came in on me what he meant by twenty-pounders were those
|
||
|
unhappy criminals who were sent over-seas to slavery in North
|
||
|
America, or the still more unhappy innocents who were kidnapped
|
||
|
or trepanned (as the word went) for private interest or
|
||
|
vengeance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Just then we came to the top of the hill, and looked down
|
||
|
on the Ferry and the Hope. The Firth of Forth (as is very well
|
||
|
known) narrows at this point to the width of a good-sized river,
|
||
|
which makes a convenient ferry going north, and turns the upper
|
||
|
reach into a landlocked haven for all manner of ships. Right in
|
||
|
the midst of the narrows lies an islet with some ruins; on the
|
||
|
south shore they have built a pier for the service of the Ferry;
|
||
|
and at the end of the pier, on the other side of the road, and
|
||
|
backed against a pretty garden of holly-trees and hawthorns, I
|
||
|
could see the building which they called the Hawes Inn.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The town of Queensferry lies farther west, and the
|
||
|
neighbourhood of the inn looked pretty lonely at that time of
|
||
|
day, for the boat had just gone north with passengers. A skiff,
|
||
|
however, lay beside the pier, with some seamen sleeping on the
|
||
|
thwarts; this, as Ransome told me, was the brig's boat waiting
|
||
|
for the captain; and about half a mile off, and all alone in the
|
||
|
anchorage, he showed me the Covenant herself. There was a
|
||
|
sea-going bustle on board; yards were swinging into place; and
|
||
|
as the wind blew from that quarter, I could hear the song of the
|
||
|
sailors as they pulled upon the ropes. After all I had listened
|
||
|
to upon the way, I looked at that ship with an extreme
|
||
|
abhorrence; and from the bottom of my heart I pitied all poor
|
||
|
souls that were condemned to sail in her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had all three pulled up on the brow of the hill; and now
|
||
|
I marched across the road and addressed my uncle. "I think it
|
||
|
right to tell you, sir." says I, "there's nothing that will
|
||
|
bring me on board that Covenant."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He seemed to waken from a dream. "Eh?" he said. "What's
|
||
|
that?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I told him over again.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, well," he said, "we'll have to please ye, I suppose.
|
||
|
But what are we standing here for? It's perishing cold; and if
|
||
|
I'm no mistaken, they're busking the Covenant for sea."
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] Agent.
|
||
|
[2] Unwilling.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER VI
|
||
|
WHAT BEFELL AT THE QUEEN'S FERRY
|
||
|
|
||
|
AS soon as we came to the inn, Ransome led us up the stair to a
|
||
|
small room, with a bed in it, and heated like an oven by a great
|
||
|
fire of coal. At a table hard by the chimney, a tall, dark,
|
||
|
sober-looking man sat writing. In spite of the heat of the room,
|
||
|
he wore a thick sea-jacket, buttoned to the neck, and a tall
|
||
|
hairy cap drawn down over his ears; yet I never saw any man, not
|
||
|
even a judge upon the bench, look cooler, or more studious and
|
||
|
self-possessed, than this ship-captain.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He got to his feet at once, and coming forward, offered his
|
||
|
large hand to Ebenezer. "I am proud to see you, Mr. Balfour,"
|
||
|
said he, in a fine deep voice, "and glad that ye are here in
|
||
|
time. The wind's fair, and the tide upon the turn; we'll see the
|
||
|
old coal-bucket burning on the Isle of May before to-night."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Captain Hoseason," returned my uncle, "you keep your room
|
||
|
unco hot."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's a habit I have, Mr. Balfour," said the skipper. "I'm
|
||
|
a cold-rife man by my nature; I have a cold blood, sir. There's
|
||
|
neither fur, nor flannel -- no, sir, nor hot rum, will warm up
|
||
|
what they call the temperature. Sir, it's the same with most men
|
||
|
that have been carbonadoed, as they call it, in the tropic
|
||
|
seas."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, well, captain," replied my uncle, "we must all be
|
||
|
the way we're made."
|
||
|
|
||
|
But it chanced that this fancy of the captain's had a great
|
||
|
share in my misfortunes. For though I had promised myself not to
|
||
|
let my kinsman out of sight, I was both so impatient for a
|
||
|
nearer look of the sea, and so sickened by the closeness of the
|
||
|
room, that when he told me to "run down-stairs and play myself
|
||
|
awhile," I was fool enough to take him at his word.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Away I went, therefore, leaving the two men sitting down to
|
||
|
a bottle and a great mass of papers; and crossing the road in
|
||
|
front of the inn, walked down upon the beach. With the wind in
|
||
|
that quarter, only little wavelets, not much bigger than I had
|
||
|
seen upon a lake, beat upon the shore. But the weeds were new to
|
||
|
me -- some green, some brown and long, and some with little
|
||
|
bladders that crackled between my fingers. Even so far up the
|
||
|
firth, the smell of the sea-water was exceedingly salt and
|
||
|
stirring; the Covenant, besides, was beginning to shake out her
|
||
|
sails, which hung upon the yards in clusters; and the spirit of
|
||
|
all that I beheld put me in thoughts of far voyages and foreign
|
||
|
places.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I looked, too, at the seamen with the skiff -- big brown
|
||
|
fellows, some in shirts, some with jackets, some with coloured
|
||
|
handkerchiefs about their throats, one with a brace of pistols
|
||
|
stuck into his pockets, two or three with knotty bludgeons, and
|
||
|
all with their case-knives. I passed the time of day with one
|
||
|
that looked less desperate than his fellows, and asked him of
|
||
|
the sailing of the brig. He said they would get under way as
|
||
|
soon as the ebb set, and expressed his gladness to be out of a
|
||
|
port where there were no taverns and fiddlers; but all with such
|
||
|
horrifying oaths, that I made haste to get away from him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This threw me back on Ransome, who seemed the least wicked
|
||
|
of that gang, and who soon came out of the inn and ran to me,
|
||
|
crying for a bowl of punch. I told him I would give him no such
|
||
|
thing, for neither he nor I was of an age for such indulgences.
|
||
|
"But a glass of ale you may have, and welcome," said I. He
|
||
|
mopped and mowed at me, and called me names; but he was glad to
|
||
|
get the ale, for all that; and presently we were set down at a
|
||
|
table in the front room of the inn, and both eating and drinking
|
||
|
with a good appetite.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here it occurred to me that, as the landlord was a man of
|
||
|
that county, I might do well to make a friend of him. I offered
|
||
|
him a share, as was much the custom in those days; but he was
|
||
|
far too great a man to sit with such poor customers as Ransome
|
||
|
and myself, and he was leaving the room, when I called him back
|
||
|
to ask if he knew Mr. Rankeillor.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hoot, ay," says he, "and a very honest man. And, O,
|
||
|
by-the-by," says he, "was it you that came in with Ebenezer?"
|
||
|
And when I had told him yes, "Ye'll be no friend of his?" he
|
||
|
asked, meaning, in the Scottish way, that I would be no
|
||
|
relative.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I told him no, none."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I thought not," said he, "and yet ye have a kind of
|
||
|
gliff[1] of Mr. Alexander."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I said it seemed that Ebenezer was ill-seen in the country.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Nae doubt," said the landlord. "He's a wicked auld man,
|
||
|
and there's many would like to see him girning in the tow.[2]
|
||
|
Jennet Clouston and mony mair that he has harried out of house
|
||
|
and hame. And yet he was ance a fine young fellow, too. But that
|
||
|
was before the sough[3] gaed abroad about Mr. Alexander, that
|
||
|
was like the death of him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And what was it?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ou, just that he had killed him," said the landlord. "Did
|
||
|
ye never hear that?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And what would he kill him for?" said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And what for, but just to get the place," said he.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The place?" said I. "The Shaws?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Nae other place that I ken," said he.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay, man?" said I. "Is that so? Was my -- was Alexander the
|
||
|
eldest son?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"'Deed was he," said the landlord. "What else would he have
|
||
|
killed him for?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
And with that he went away, as he had been impatient to do
|
||
|
from the beginning.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Of course, I had guessed it a long while ago; but it is one
|
||
|
thing to guess, another to know; and I sat stunned with my good
|
||
|
fortune, and could scarce grow to believe that the same poor lad
|
||
|
who had trudged in the dust from Ettrick Forest not two days
|
||
|
ago, was now one of the rich of the earth, and had a house and
|
||
|
broad lands, and might mount his horse tomorrow. All these
|
||
|
pleasant things, and a thousand others, crowded into my mind, as
|
||
|
I sat staring before me out of the inn window, and paying no
|
||
|
heed to what I saw; only I remember that my eye lighted on
|
||
|
Captain Hoseason down on the pier among his seamen, and speaking
|
||
|
with some authority. And presently he came marching back towards
|
||
|
the house, with no mark of a sailor's clumsiness, but carrying
|
||
|
his fine, tall figure with a manly bearing, and still with the
|
||
|
same sober, grave expression on his face. I wondered if it was
|
||
|
possible that Ransome's stories could be true, and half
|
||
|
disbelieved them; they fitted so ill with the man's looks. But
|
||
|
indeed, he was neither so good as I supposed him, nor quite so
|
||
|
bad as Ransome did; for, in fact, he was two men, and left the
|
||
|
better one behind as soon as he set foot on board his vessel.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The next thing, I heard my uncle calling me, and found the
|
||
|
pair in the road together. It was the captain who addressed me,
|
||
|
and that with an air (very flattering to a young lad) of grave
|
||
|
equality.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sir," said he, "Mr. Balfour tells me great things of you;
|
||
|
and for my own part, I like your looks. I wish I was for longer
|
||
|
here, that we might make the better friends; but we'll make the
|
||
|
most of what we have. Ye shall come on board my brig for half an
|
||
|
hour, till the ebb sets, and drink a bowl with me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now, I longed to see the inside of a ship more than words
|
||
|
can tell; but I was not going to put myself in jeopardy, and I
|
||
|
told him my uncle and I had an appointment with a lawyer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay, ay," said he, "he passed me word of that. But, ye see,
|
||
|
the boat'll set ye ashore at the town pier, and that's but a
|
||
|
penny stonecast from Rankeillor's house." And here he suddenly
|
||
|
leaned down and whispered in my ear: "Take care of the old
|
||
|
tod;[4] he means mischief. Come aboard till I can get a word
|
||
|
with ye." And then, passing his arm through mine, he continued
|
||
|
aloud, as he set off towards his boat: "But, come, what can I
|
||
|
bring ye from the Carolinas? Any friend of Mr. Balfour's can
|
||
|
command. A roll of tobacco? Indian feather-work? a skin of a
|
||
|
wild beast? a stone pipe? the mocking-bird that mews for all the
|
||
|
world like a cat? the cardinal bird that is as red as blood? --
|
||
|
take your pick and say your pleasure."
|
||
|
|
||
|
By this time we were at the boat-side, and he was handing
|
||
|
me in. I did not dream of hanging back; I thought (the poor
|
||
|
fool!) that I had found a good friend and helper, and I was
|
||
|
rejoiced to see the ship. As soon as we were all set in our
|
||
|
places, the boat was thrust off from the pier and began to move
|
||
|
over the waters: and what with my pleasure in this new movement
|
||
|
and my surprise at our low position, and the appearance of the
|
||
|
shores, and the growing bigness of the brig as we drew near to
|
||
|
it, I could hardly understand what the captain said, and must
|
||
|
have answered him at random.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As soon as we were alongside (where I sat fairly gaping at
|
||
|
the ship's height, the strong humming of the tide against its
|
||
|
sides, and the pleasant cries of the seamen at their work)
|
||
|
Hoseason, declaring that he and I must be the first aboard,
|
||
|
ordered a tackle to be sent down from the main-yard. In this I
|
||
|
was whipped into the air and set down again on the deck, where
|
||
|
the captain stood ready waiting for me, and instantly slipped
|
||
|
back his arm under mine. There I stood some while, a little
|
||
|
dizzy with the unsteadiness of all around me, perhaps a little
|
||
|
afraid, and yet vastly pleased with these strange sights; the
|
||
|
captain meanwhile pointing out the strangest, and telling me
|
||
|
their names and uses.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But where is my uncle?" said I suddenly.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay," said Hoseason, with a sudden grimness, "that's the
|
||
|
point."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I felt I was lost. With all my strength, I plucked myself
|
||
|
clear of him and ran to the bulwarks. Sure enough, there was the
|
||
|
boat pulling for the town, with my uncle sitting in the stern.
|
||
|
I gave a piercing cry -- "Help, help! Murder!" -- so that both
|
||
|
sides of the anchorage rang with it, and my uncle turned round
|
||
|
where he was sitting, and showed me a face full of cruelty and
|
||
|
terror.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was the last I saw. Already strong hands had been
|
||
|
plucking me back from the ship's side; and now a thunderbolt
|
||
|
seemed to strike me; I saw a great flash of fire, and fell
|
||
|
senseless.
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] Look.
|
||
|
[2] Rope.
|
||
|
[3] Report.
|
||
|
[4] Fox.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER VII
|
||
|
I GO TO SEA IN THE BRIG "COVENANT" OF DYSART
|
||
|
|
||
|
I CAME to myself in darkness, in great pain, bound hand and
|
||
|
foot, and deafened by many unfamiliar noises. There sounded in
|
||
|
my ears a roaring of water as of a huge mill-dam, the thrashing
|
||
|
of heavy sprays, the thundering of the sails, and the shrill
|
||
|
cries of seamen. The whole world now heaved giddily up, and now
|
||
|
rushed giddily downward; and so sick and hurt was I in body, and
|
||
|
my mind so much confounded, that it took me a long while,
|
||
|
chasing my thoughts up and down, and ever stunned again by a
|
||
|
fresh stab of pain, to realise that I must be lying somewhere
|
||
|
bound in the belly of that unlucky ship, and that the wind must
|
||
|
have strengthened to a gale. With the clear perception of my
|
||
|
plight, there fell upon me a blackness of despair, a horror of
|
||
|
remorse at my own folly, and a passion of anger at my uncle,
|
||
|
that once more bereft me of my senses.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I returned again to life, the same uproar, the same
|
||
|
confused and violent movements, shook and deafened me; and
|
||
|
presently, to my other pains and distresses, there was added the
|
||
|
sickness of an unused landsman on the sea. In that time of my
|
||
|
adventurous youth, I suffered many hardships; but none that was
|
||
|
so crushing to my mind and body, or lit by so few hopes, as
|
||
|
these first hours aboard the brig.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I heard a gun fire, and supposed the storm had proved too
|
||
|
strong for us, and we were firing signals of distress. The
|
||
|
thought of deliverance, even by death in the deep sea, was
|
||
|
welcome to me. Yet it was no such matter; but (as I was
|
||
|
afterwards told) a common habit of the captain's, which I here
|
||
|
set down to show that even the worst man may have his kindlier
|
||
|
side. We were then passing, it appearcd, within some miles of
|
||
|
Dysart, where the brig was built, and where old Mrs. Hoseason,
|
||
|
the captain's mother, had come some years before to live; and
|
||
|
whether outward or inward bound, the Covenant was never suffered
|
||
|
to go by that place by day, without a gun fired and colours
|
||
|
shown.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had no measure of time; day and night were alike in that
|
||
|
ill-smelling cavern of the ship's bowels where, I lay. and the
|
||
|
misery of my situation drew out the hours to double. How long,
|
||
|
therefore, I lay waiting to hear the ship split upon some rock,
|
||
|
or to feel her reel head foremost into the depths of the sea, I
|
||
|
have not the means of computation. But sleep at length stole
|
||
|
from me the consciousness of sorrow.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was awakened by the light of a hand-lantern shining in my
|
||
|
face. A small man of about thirty, with green eyes and a tangle
|
||
|
of fair hair, stood looking down at me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," said he, "how goes it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I answered by a sob; and my visitor then felt my pulse and
|
||
|
temples, and set himself to wash and dress the wound upon my
|
||
|
scalp.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay," said he, "a sore dunt.[1] What, man? Cheer up! The
|
||
|
world's no done; you've made a bad start of it but you'll make
|
||
|
a better. Have you had any meat?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I said I could not look at it: and thereupon he gave me
|
||
|
some brandy and water in a tin pannikin, and left me once more
|
||
|
to myself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The next time he came to see me, I was lying betwixt sleep
|
||
|
and waking, my eyes wide open in the darkness, the sickness
|
||
|
quite departed, but succeeded by a horrid giddiness and swimming
|
||
|
that was almost worse to bear. I ached, besides, in every limb,
|
||
|
and the cords that bound me seemed to be of fire. The smell of
|
||
|
the hole in which I lay seemed to have become a part of me; and
|
||
|
during the long interval since his last visit I had suffered
|
||
|
tortures of fear, now from the scurrying of the ship's rats,
|
||
|
that sometimes pattered on my very face, and now from the dismal
|
||
|
imaginings that haunt the bed of fever.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The glimmer of the lantern, as a trap opened, shone in like
|
||
|
the heaven's sunlight; and though it only showed me the strong,
|
||
|
dark beams of the ship that was my prison, I could have cried
|
||
|
aloud for gladness. The man with the green eyes was the first to
|
||
|
descend the ladder, and I noticed that he came somewhat
|
||
|
unsteadily. He was followed by the captain. Neither said a word;
|
||
|
but the first set to and examined me, and dressed my wound as
|
||
|
before, while Hoseason looked me in my face with an odd, black
|
||
|
look.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now, sir, you see for yourself," said the first: "a high
|
||
|
fever, no appetite, no light, no meat: you see for yourself what
|
||
|
that means."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am no conjurer, Mr. Riach," said the captain.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Give me leave, sir" said Riach; "you've a good head upon
|
||
|
your shoulders, and a good Scotch tongue to ask with; but I will
|
||
|
leave you no manner of excuse; I want that boy taken out of this
|
||
|
hole and put in the forecastle."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What ye may want, sir, is a matter of concern to nobody
|
||
|
but yoursel'," returned the captain; "but I can tell ye that
|
||
|
which is to be. Here he is; here he shall bide."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Admitting that you have been paid in a proportion," said
|
||
|
the other, "I will crave leave humbly to say that I have not.
|
||
|
Paid I am, and none too much, to be the second officer of this
|
||
|
old tub, and you ken very well if I do my best to earn it. But
|
||
|
I was paid for nothing more."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If ye could hold back your hand from the tin-pan, Mr.
|
||
|
Riach, I would have no complaint to make of ye," returned the
|
||
|
skipper. "and instead of asking riddles, I make bold to say that
|
||
|
ye would keep your breath to cool your porridge. We'll be
|
||
|
required on deck," he added, in a sharper note, and set one foot
|
||
|
upon the ladder.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But Mr. Riach caught him by the sleeve.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Admitting that you have been paid to do a murder ----" he
|
||
|
began.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Hoseason turned upon him with a flash.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What's that?" he cried. "What kind of talk is that?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It seems it is the talk that you can understand," said Mr.
|
||
|
Riach, looking him steadily in the face.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mr. Riach, I have sailed with ye three cruises," replied
|
||
|
the captain. "In all that time, sir, ye should have learned to
|
||
|
know me: I'm a stiff man, and a dour man; but for what ye say
|
||
|
the now -- fie, fie! -- it comes from a bad heart and a black
|
||
|
conscience. If ye say the lad will die----"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay, will he!" said Mr. Riach.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, sir, is not that enough?" said Hoseason. "Flit him
|
||
|
where ye please!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thereupon the captain ascended the ladder; and I, who had
|
||
|
lain silent throughout this strange conversation, beheld Mr.
|
||
|
Riach turn after him and bow as low as to his knees in what was
|
||
|
plainly a spirit of derision. Even in my then state of sickness,
|
||
|
I perceived two things: that the mate was touched with liquor,
|
||
|
as the captain hinted, and that (drunk or sober) he was like to
|
||
|
prove a valuable friend.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Five minutes afterwards my bonds were cut, I was hoisted on
|
||
|
a man's back, carried up to the forecastle, and laid in a bunk
|
||
|
on some sea-blankets; where the first thing that I did was to
|
||
|
lose my senses.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was a blessed thing indeed to open my eyes again upon
|
||
|
the daylight, and to find myself in the society of men. The
|
||
|
forecastle was a roomy place enough, set all about with berths,
|
||
|
in which the men of the watch below were seated smoking, or
|
||
|
lying down asleep. The day being calm and the wind fair, the
|
||
|
scuttle was open, and not only the good daylight, but from time
|
||
|
to time (as the ship rolled) a dusty beam of sunlight shone in,
|
||
|
and dazzled and delighted me. I had no sooner moved, moreover,
|
||
|
than one of the men brought me a drink of something healing
|
||
|
which Mr. Riach had prepared, and bade me lie still and I should
|
||
|
soon be well again. There were no bones broken, he explained: "A
|
||
|
clour[2] on the head was naething. Man," said he, "it was me
|
||
|
that gave it ye!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here I lay for the space of many days a close prisoner, and
|
||
|
not only got my health again, but came to know my companions.
|
||
|
They were a rough lot indeed, as sailors mostly are: being men
|
||
|
rooted out of all the kindly parts of life, and condemned to
|
||
|
toss together on the rough seas, with masters no less cruel.
|
||
|
There were some among them that had sailed with the pirates and
|
||
|
seen things it would be a shame even to speak of; some were men
|
||
|
that had run from the king's ships, and went with a halter round
|
||
|
their necks, of which they made no secret; and all, as the
|
||
|
saying goes, were "at a word and a blow" with their best
|
||
|
friends. Yet I had not been many days shut up with them before
|
||
|
I began to be ashamed of my first judgment, when I had drawn
|
||
|
away from them at the Ferry pier, as though they had been
|
||
|
unclean beasts. No class of man is altogether bad, but each has
|
||
|
its own faults and virtues; and these shipmates of mine were no
|
||
|
exception to the rule. Rough they were, sure enough; and bad, I
|
||
|
suppose; but they had many virtues. They were kind when it
|
||
|
occurred to them, simple even beyond the simplicity of a country
|
||
|
lad like me, and had some glimmerings of honesty.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was one man, of maybe forty, that would sit on my
|
||
|
berthside for hours and tell me of his wife and child. He was a
|
||
|
fisher that had lost his boat, and thus been driven to the
|
||
|
deep-sea voyaging. Well, it is years ago now: but I have never
|
||
|
forgotten him. His wife (who was "young by him," as he often
|
||
|
told me) waited in vain to see her man return; he would never
|
||
|
again make the fire for her in the morning, nor yet keep the
|
||
|
bairn when she was sick. Indeed, many of these poor fellows (as
|
||
|
the event proved) were upon their last cruise; the deep seas and
|
||
|
cannibal fish received them; and it is a thankless business to
|
||
|
speak ill of the dead.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Among other good deeds that they did, they returned my
|
||
|
money, which had been shared among them; and though it was about
|
||
|
a third short, I was very glad to get it, and hoped great good
|
||
|
from it in the land I was going to. The ship was bound for the
|
||
|
Carolinas; and you must not suppose that I was going to that
|
||
|
place merely as an exile. The trade was even then much
|
||
|
depressed; since that, and with the rebellion of the colonies
|
||
|
and the formation of the United States, it has, of course, come
|
||
|
to an end; but in those days of my youth, white men were still
|
||
|
sold into slavery on the plantations, and that was the destiny
|
||
|
to which my wicked uncle had condemned me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The cabin-boy Ransome (from whom I had first heard of these
|
||
|
atrocities) came in at times from the round-house, where he
|
||
|
berthed and served, now nursing a bruised limb in silent agony,
|
||
|
now raving against the cruelty of Mr. Shuan. It made my heart
|
||
|
bleed; but the men had a great respect for the chief mate, who
|
||
|
was, as they said, "the only seaman of the whole jing-bang, and
|
||
|
none such a bad man when he was sober." Indeed, I found there
|
||
|
was a strange peculiarity about our two mates: that Mr. Riach
|
||
|
was sullen, unkind, and harsh when he was sober, and Mr. Shuan
|
||
|
would not hurt a fly except when he was drinking. I asked about
|
||
|
the captain; but I was told drink made no difference upon that
|
||
|
man of iron.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I did my best in the small time allowed me to make some
|
||
|
thing like a man, or rather I should say something like a boy,
|
||
|
of the poor creature, Ransome. But his mind was scarce truly
|
||
|
human. He could remember nothing of the time before he came to
|
||
|
sea; only that his father had made clocks, and had a starling in
|
||
|
the parlour, which could whistle "The North Countrie;" all else
|
||
|
had been blotted out in these years of hardship and cruelties.
|
||
|
He had a strange notion of the dry land, picked up from sailor's
|
||
|
stories: that it was a place where lads were put to some kind of
|
||
|
slavery called a trade, and where apprentices were continually
|
||
|
lashed and clapped into foul prisons. In a town, he thought
|
||
|
every second person a decoy, and every third house a place in
|
||
|
which seamen would be drugged and murdered. To be sure, I would
|
||
|
tell him how kindly I had myself been used upon that dry land he
|
||
|
was so much afraid of, and how well fed and carefully taught
|
||
|
both by my friends and my parents: and if he had been recently
|
||
|
hurt, he would weep bitterly and swear to run away; but if he
|
||
|
was in his usual crackbrain humour, or (still more) if he had
|
||
|
had a glass of spirits in the roundhouse, he would deride the
|
||
|
notion.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was Mr. Riach (Heaven forgive him!) who gave the boy
|
||
|
drink; and it was, doubtless, kindly meant; but besides that it
|
||
|
was ruin to his health, it was the pitifullest thing in life to
|
||
|
see this unhappy, unfriended creature staggering, and dancing,
|
||
|
and talking he knew not what. Some of the men laughed, but not
|
||
|
all; others would grow as black as thunder (thinking, perhaps,
|
||
|
of their own childhood or their own children) and bid him stop
|
||
|
that nonsense, and think what he was doing. As for me, I felt
|
||
|
ashamed to look at him, and the poor child still comes about me
|
||
|
in my dreams.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All this time, you should know, the Covenant was meeting
|
||
|
continual head-winds and tumbling up and down against head-seas,
|
||
|
so that the scuttle was almost constantly shut, and the
|
||
|
forecastle lighted only by a swinging lantern on a beam. There
|
||
|
was constant labour for all hands; the sails had to be made and
|
||
|
shortened every hour; the strain told on the men's temper; there
|
||
|
was a growl of quarrelling all day, long from berth to berth;
|
||
|
and as I was never allowed to set my foot on deck, you can
|
||
|
picture to yourselves how weary of my life I grew to be, and how
|
||
|
impatient for a change.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And a change I was to get, as you shall hear; but I must
|
||
|
first tell of a conversation I had with Mr. Riach, which put a
|
||
|
little heart in me to bear my troubles. Getting him in a
|
||
|
favourable stage of drink (for indeed he never looked near me
|
||
|
when he was sober), I pledged him to secrecy, and told him my
|
||
|
whole story.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He declared it was like a ballad; that he would do his best
|
||
|
to help me; that I should have paper, pen, and ink, and write
|
||
|
one line to Mr. Campbell and another to Mr. Rankeillor; and that
|
||
|
if I had told the truth, ten to one he would be able (with their
|
||
|
help) to pull me through and set me in my rights.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And in the meantime," says he, "keep your heart up. You're
|
||
|
not the only one, I'll tell you that. There's many a man hoeing
|
||
|
tobacco over-seas that should be mounting his horse at his own
|
||
|
door at home; many and many! And life is all a variorum, at the
|
||
|
best. Look at me: I'm a laird's son and more than half a doctor,
|
||
|
and here I am, man-Jack to Hoseason!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I thought it would be civil to ask him for his story.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He whistled loud.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Never had one," said he. "I like fun, that's all." And he
|
||
|
skipped out of the forecastle.
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] Stroke.
|
||
|
[2] Blow.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER VIII
|
||
|
THE ROUND-HOUSE
|
||
|
|
||
|
ONE night, about eleven o'clock, a man of Mr. Riach's watch
|
||
|
(which was on deck) came below for his jacket; and instantly
|
||
|
there began to go a whisper about the forecastle that "Shuan had
|
||
|
done for him at last." There was no need of a name; we all knew
|
||
|
who was meant; but we had scarce time to get the idea rightly in
|
||
|
our heads, far less to speak of it, when the scuttle was again
|
||
|
flung open, and Captain Hoseason came down the ladder. He looked
|
||
|
sharply round the bunks in the tossing light of the lantern; and
|
||
|
then, walking straight up to me, he addressed me, to my
|
||
|
surprise, in tones of kindness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My man," said he, "we want ye to serve in the round-house.
|
||
|
You and Ransome are to change berths. Run away aft with ye."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Even as he spoke, two seamen appeared in the scuttle,
|
||
|
carrying Ransome in their arms; and the ship at that moment
|
||
|
giving a great sheer into the sea, and the lantern swinging, the
|
||
|
light fell direct on the boy's face. It was as white as wax, and
|
||
|
had a look upon it like a dreadful smile. The blood in me ran
|
||
|
cold, and I drew in my breath as if I had been struck.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Run away aft; run away aft with ye!" cried Hoseason.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And at that I brushed by the sailors and the boy (who
|
||
|
neither spoke nor moved), and ran up the ladder on deck.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The brig was sheering swiftly and giddily through a long,
|
||
|
cresting swell. She was on the starboard tack, and on the left
|
||
|
hand, under the arched foot of the foresail, I could see the
|
||
|
sunset still quite bright. This, at such an hour of the night,
|
||
|
surprised me greatly; but I was too ignorant to draw the true
|
||
|
conclusion -- that we were going north-about round Scotland, and
|
||
|
were now on the high sea between the Orkney and Shetland
|
||
|
Islands, having avoided the dangerous currents of the Pentland
|
||
|
Firth. For my part, who had been so long shut in the dark and
|
||
|
knew nothing of head-winds, I thought we might be half-way or
|
||
|
more across the Atlantic. And indeed (beyond that I wondered a
|
||
|
little at the lateness of the sunset light) I gave no heed to
|
||
|
it, and pushed on across the decks, running between the seas,
|
||
|
catching at ropes, and only saved from going overboard by one of
|
||
|
the hands on deck, who had been always kind to me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The round-house, for which I was bound, and where I was now
|
||
|
to sleep and serve, stood some six feet above the decks, and
|
||
|
considering the size of the brig, was of good dimensions. Inside
|
||
|
were a fixed table and bench, and two berths, one for the
|
||
|
captain and the other for the two mates, turn and turn about. It
|
||
|
was all fitted with lockers from top to bottom, so as to stow
|
||
|
away the offieers' belongings and a part of the ship's stores;
|
||
|
there was a second store-room underneath, which you entered by
|
||
|
a hatchway in the middle of the deck; indeed, all the best of
|
||
|
the meat and drink and the whole of the powder were collected in
|
||
|
this place; and all the firearms, except the two pieces of brass
|
||
|
ordnance, were set in a rack in the aftermost wall of the
|
||
|
round-house. The most of the cutlasses were in another place.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A small window with a shutter on each side, and a skylight
|
||
|
in the roof, gave it light by, day; and after dark there was a
|
||
|
lamp always burning. It was burning when I entered, not
|
||
|
brightly, but enough to show Mr. Shuan sitting at the table,
|
||
|
with the brandy bottle and a tin pannikin in front of him. He
|
||
|
was a tall man, strongly made and very black; and he stared
|
||
|
before him on the table like one stupid.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He took no notice of my coming in; nor did he move when the
|
||
|
captain followed and leant on the berth beside me, looking
|
||
|
darkly at the mate. I stood in great fear of Hoseason, and had
|
||
|
my reasons for it; but something told me I need not be afraid of
|
||
|
him just then; and I whispered in his ear: "How is he?" He shook
|
||
|
his head like one that does not know and does not wish to think,
|
||
|
and his face was very stern.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently Mr. Riach came in. He gave the captain a glance
|
||
|
that meant the boy was dead as plain as speaking, and took his
|
||
|
place like the rest of us; so that we all three stood without a
|
||
|
word, staring down at Mr. Shuan, and Mr. Shuan (on his side) sat
|
||
|
without a word, looking hard upon the table.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All of a sudden he put out his hand to take the bottle; and
|
||
|
at that Mr. Riach started forward and caught it away from him,
|
||
|
rather by surprise than violence, crying out, with an oath, that
|
||
|
there had been too much of this work altogether, and that a
|
||
|
judgment would fall upon the ship. And as he spoke (the weather
|
||
|
sliding-doors standing open) he tossed the bottle into the sea.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Shuan was on his feet in a trice; he still looked
|
||
|
dazed, but he meant murder, ay, and would have done it, for the
|
||
|
second time that night, had not the captain stepped in between
|
||
|
him and his victim.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sit down!" roars the captain. "Ye sot and swine, do ye
|
||
|
know what ye've done? Ye've murdered the boy!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Shuan seemed to understand; for he sat down again, and
|
||
|
put up his hand to his brow.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," he said, "he brought me a dirty pannikin!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
At that word, the captain and I and Mr. Riach all looked at
|
||
|
each other for a second with a kind of frightened look; and then
|
||
|
Hoseason walked up to his chief officer, took him by the
|
||
|
shoulder, led him across to his bunk, and bade him lie down and
|
||
|
go to sleep, as you might speak to a bad child. The murderer
|
||
|
cried a little, but he took off his sea-boots and obeyed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah!" cried Mr. Riach, with a dreadful voice, "ye should
|
||
|
have interfered long syne. It's too late now."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mr. Riach," said the captain, "this night's work must
|
||
|
never be kennt in Dysart. The boy went overboard, sir; that's
|
||
|
what the story is; and I would give five pounds out of my pocket
|
||
|
it was true!" He turned to the table. "What made ye throw the
|
||
|
good bottle away?" he added. "There was nae sense in that, sir.
|
||
|
Here, David, draw me another. They're in the bottom locker;" and
|
||
|
he tossed me a key. "Ye'll need a glass yourself, sir," he added
|
||
|
to Riach." Yon was an ugly thing to see."
|
||
|
|
||
|
So the pair sat down and hob-a-nobbed; and while they did
|
||
|
so, the murderer, who had been lying and whimpering in his
|
||
|
berth, raised himself upon his elbow and looked at them and at
|
||
|
me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
That was the first night of my new duties; and in the
|
||
|
course of the next day I had got well into the run of them. I
|
||
|
had to serve at the meals, which the captain took at regular
|
||
|
hours, sitting down with the officer who was off, duty; all the
|
||
|
day through I would be running with a dram to one or other of my
|
||
|
three masters; and at night I slept on a blanket thrown on the
|
||
|
deck boards at the aftermost end of the round-house, and right
|
||
|
in the draught of the two doors. It was a hard and a cold bed;
|
||
|
nor was I suffered to sleep without interruption; for some one
|
||
|
would be always coming in from deck to get a dram, and when a
|
||
|
fresh watch was to be set, two and sometimes all three would sit
|
||
|
down and brew a bowl together. How they kept their health, I
|
||
|
know not, any more than how I kept my own.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And yet in other ways it was an easy service. There was no
|
||
|
cloth to lay; the meals were either of oatmeal porridge or salt
|
||
|
junk, except twice a week, when there was duff: and though I was
|
||
|
clumsy enough and (not being firm on my sealegs) sometimes fell
|
||
|
with what I was bringing them, both Mr. Riach and the captain
|
||
|
were singularly patient. I could not but fancy they were making
|
||
|
up lee-way with their consciences, and that they would scarce
|
||
|
have been so good with me if they had not been worse with
|
||
|
Ransome.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As for Mr. Shuan, the drink or his crime, or the two
|
||
|
together, had certainly troubled his mind. I cannot say I ever
|
||
|
saw him in his proper wits. He never grew used to my being
|
||
|
there, stared at me continually (sometimes, I could have
|
||
|
thought, with terror), and more than once drew back from my hand
|
||
|
when I was serving him. I was pretty sure from the first that he
|
||
|
had no clear mind of what he had done, and on my second day in
|
||
|
the round-house I had the proof of it. We were alone, and he had
|
||
|
been staring at me a long time, when all at once, up he got, as
|
||
|
pale as death, and came close up to me, to my great terror. But
|
||
|
I had no cause to be afraid of him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You were not here before?" he asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, sir," said I."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There was another boy?" he asked again; and when I had
|
||
|
answered him, "Ah!" says he, "I thought that," and went and sat
|
||
|
down, without another word, except to call for brandy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
You may think it strange, but for all the horror I had, I
|
||
|
was still sorry for him. He was a married man, with a wife in
|
||
|
Leith; but whether or no he had a family, I have now forgotten;
|
||
|
I hope not.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Altogether it was no very hard life for the time it lasted,
|
||
|
which (as you are to hear) was not long. I was as well fed as
|
||
|
the best of them; even their pickles, which were the great
|
||
|
dainty, I was allowed my share of; and had I liked I might have
|
||
|
been drunk from morning to night, like Mr. Shuan. I had company,
|
||
|
too, and good company of its sort. Mr. Riach, who had been to
|
||
|
the college, spoke to me like a friend when he was not sulking,
|
||
|
and told me many curious things, and some that were informing;
|
||
|
and even the captain, though he kept me at the stick's end the
|
||
|
most part of the time, would sometimes unbuckle a bit, and tell
|
||
|
me of the fine countries he had visited.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The shadow of poor Ransome, to be sure, lay on all four of
|
||
|
us, and on me and Mr. Shuan in particular, most heavily. And
|
||
|
then I had another trouble of my own. Here I was, doing dirty
|
||
|
work for three men that I looked down upon, and one of whom, at
|
||
|
least, should have hung upon a gallows; that was for the
|
||
|
present; and as for the future, I could only see myself slaving
|
||
|
alongside of negroes in the tobacco fields. Mr. Riach, perhaps
|
||
|
from caution, would never suffer me to say another word about my
|
||
|
story; the captain, whom I tried to approach, rebuffed me like
|
||
|
a dog and would not hear a word; and as the days came and went,
|
||
|
my heart sank lower and lower, till I was even glad of the work
|
||
|
which kept me from thinking.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER IX
|
||
|
THE MAN WITH THE BELT OF GOLD
|
||
|
|
||
|
MORE than a week went by, in which the ill-luck that had
|
||
|
hitherto pursued the Covenant upon this voyage grew yet more
|
||
|
strongly marked. Some days she made a little way; others, she
|
||
|
was driven actually back. At last we were beaten so far to the
|
||
|
south that we tossed and tacked to and fro the whole of the
|
||
|
ninth day, within sight of Cape Wrath and the wild, rocky coast
|
||
|
on either hand of it. There followed on that a council of the
|
||
|
officers, and some decision which I did not rightly understand,
|
||
|
seeing only the result: that we had made a fair wind of a foul
|
||
|
one and were running south.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The tenth afternoon there was a falling swell and a thick,
|
||
|
wet, white fog that hid one end of the brig from the other. All
|
||
|
afternoon, when I went on deck, I saw men and officers listening
|
||
|
hard over the bulwarks -- "for breakers," they said; and though
|
||
|
I did not so much as understand the word, I felt danger in the
|
||
|
air, and was excited.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Maybe about ten at night, I was serving Mr. Riach and the
|
||
|
captain at their supper, when the ship struck something with a
|
||
|
great sound, and we heard voices singing out. My two masters
|
||
|
leaped to their feet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She's struck!" said Mr. Riach.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, sir," said the captain. "We've only run a boat down."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And they hurried out.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The captain was in the right of it. We had run down a boat
|
||
|
in the fog, and she had parted in the midst and gone to the
|
||
|
bottom with all her crew but one. This man (as I heard
|
||
|
afterwards) had been sitting in the stern as a passenger, while
|
||
|
the rest were on the benches rowing. At the moment of the blow,
|
||
|
the stern had been thrown into the air, and the man (having his
|
||
|
hands free, and for all he was encumbered with a frieze overcoat
|
||
|
that came below his knees) had leaped up and caught hold of the
|
||
|
brig's bowsprit. It showed he had luck and much agility and
|
||
|
unusual strength, that he should have thus saved himself from
|
||
|
such a pass. And yet, when the captain brought him into the
|
||
|
round-house, and I set eyes on him for the first time, he looked
|
||
|
as cool as I did.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He was smallish in stature, but well set and as nimble as
|
||
|
a goat; his face was of a good open expression, but sunburnt
|
||
|
very dark, and heavily freckled and pitted with the small-pox;
|
||
|
his eyes were unusually light and had a kind of dancing madness
|
||
|
in them, that was both engaging and alarming; and when he took
|
||
|
off his great-coat, he laid a pair of fine silver-mounted
|
||
|
pistols on the table, and I saw that he was belted with a great
|
||
|
sword. His manners, besides, were elegant, and he pledged the
|
||
|
captain handsomely. Altogether I thought of him, at the first
|
||
|
sight, that here was a man I would rather call my friend than my
|
||
|
enemy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The captain, too, was taking his observations, but rather
|
||
|
of the man's clothes than his person. And to be sure, as soon as
|
||
|
he had taken off the great-coat, he showed forth mighty fine for
|
||
|
the round-house of a merchant brig: having a hat with feathers,
|
||
|
a red waistcoat, breeches of black plush, and a blue coat with
|
||
|
silver buttons and handsome silver lace; costly clothes, though
|
||
|
somewhat spoiled with the fog and being slept in.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I'm vexed, sir, about the boat," says the captain.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There are some pretty men gone to the bottom," said the
|
||
|
stranger, "that I would rather see on the dry land again than
|
||
|
half a score of boats."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Friends of yours?" said Hoseason.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You have none such friends in your country," was the
|
||
|
reply. "They would have died for me like dogs."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, sir," said the captain, still watching him, "there
|
||
|
are more men in the world than boats to put them in."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And that's true, too," cried the other, "and ye seem to be
|
||
|
a gentleman of great penetration."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have been in France, sir," says the captain, so that it
|
||
|
was plain he meant more by the words than showed upon the face
|
||
|
of them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, sir," says the other, "and so has many a pretty man,
|
||
|
for the matter of that."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No doubt, sir" says the captain, "and fine coats."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oho!" says the stranger, "is that how the wind sets?" And
|
||
|
he laid his hand quickly on his pistols.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Don't be hasty," said the captain. "Don't do a mischief
|
||
|
before ye see the need of it. Ye've a French soldier's coat upon
|
||
|
your back and a Scotch tongue in your head, to be sure; but so
|
||
|
has many an honest fellow in these days, and I dare say none the
|
||
|
worse of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"So?" said the gentleman in the fine coat: "are ye of the
|
||
|
honest party?" (meaning, Was he a Jacobite? for each side, in
|
||
|
these sort of civil broils, takes the name of honesty for its
|
||
|
own).
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, sir," replied the captain, "I am a true-blue
|
||
|
Protestant, and I thank God for it." (It was the first word of
|
||
|
any religion I had ever heard from him, but I learnt afterwards
|
||
|
he was a great church-goer while on shore.) "But, for all that,"
|
||
|
says he, "I can be sorry to see another man with his back to the
|
||
|
wall."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Can ye so, indeed?" asked the Jacobite. "Well, sir, to be
|
||
|
quite plain with ye, I am one of those honest gentlemen that
|
||
|
were in trouble about the years forty-five and six; and (to be
|
||
|
still quite plain with ye) if I got into the hands of any of the
|
||
|
red-coated gentry, it's like it would go hard with me. Now, sir,
|
||
|
I was for France; and there was a French ship cruising here to
|
||
|
pick me up; but she gave us the go-by in the fog -- as I wish
|
||
|
from the heart that ye had done yoursel'! And the best that I
|
||
|
can say is this: If ye can set me ashore where I was going, I
|
||
|
have that upon me will reward you highly for your trouble."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In France?" says the captain. "No, sir; that I cannot do.
|
||
|
But where ye come from -- we might talk of that."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And then, unhappily, he observed me standing in my corner,
|
||
|
and packed me off to the galley to get supper for the gentleman.
|
||
|
I lost no time, I promise you; and when I came back into the
|
||
|
round-house, I found the gentleman had taken a money-belt from
|
||
|
about his waist, and poured out a guinea or two upon the table.
|
||
|
The captain was looking at the guineas, and then at the belt,
|
||
|
and then at the gentleman's face; and I thought he seemed
|
||
|
excited.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Half of it," he cried, "and I'm your man!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The other swept back the guineas into the belt, and put it
|
||
|
on again under his waistcoat. "I have told ye" sir" said he,
|
||
|
"that not one doit of it belongs to me. It belongs to my
|
||
|
chieftain," and here he touched his hat," and while I would be
|
||
|
but a silly messenger to grudge some of it that the rest might
|
||
|
come safe, I should show myself a hound indeed if I bought my
|
||
|
own carcase any too dear. Thirty guineas on the sea-side, or
|
||
|
sixty if ye set me on the Linnhe Loch. Take it, if ye will; if
|
||
|
not, ye can do your worst."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay," said Hoseason. "And if I give ye over to the
|
||
|
soldiers?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye would make a fool's bargain," said the other. "My
|
||
|
chief, let me tell you, sir, is forfeited, like every honest man
|
||
|
in Scotland. His estate is in the hands of the man they call
|
||
|
King George; and it is his officers that collect the rents, or
|
||
|
try to collect them. But for the honour of Scotland, the poor
|
||
|
tenant bodies take a thought upon their chief lying in exile;
|
||
|
and this money is a part of that very rent for which King George
|
||
|
is looking. Now, sir, ye seem to me to be a man that understands
|
||
|
things: bring this money within the reach of Government, and how
|
||
|
much of it'll come to you?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Little enough, to be sure," said Hoseason; and then, "if
|
||
|
they, knew" he added, drily. "But I think, if I was to try, that
|
||
|
I could hold my tongue about it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, but I'll begowk[1] ye there!" cried the gentleman.
|
||
|
"Play me false, and I'll play you cunning. If a hand is laid
|
||
|
upon me, they shall ken what money it is."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," returned the captain, "what must be must. Sixty
|
||
|
guineas, and done. Here's my hand upon it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And here's mine," said the other.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And thereupon the captain went out (rather hurriedly, I
|
||
|
thought), and left me alone in the round-house with the
|
||
|
stranger.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At that period (so soon after the forty-five) there were
|
||
|
many exiled gentlemen coming back at the peril of their lives,
|
||
|
either to see their friends or to collect a little money; and as
|
||
|
for the Highland chiefs that had been forfeited, it was a common
|
||
|
matter of talk how their tenants would stint themselves to send
|
||
|
them money, and their clansmen outface the soldiery to get it
|
||
|
in, and run the gauntlet of our great navy to carry it across.
|
||
|
All this I had, of course, heard tell of; and now I had a man
|
||
|
under my eyes whose life was forfeit on all these counts and
|
||
|
upon one more, for he was not only a rebel and a smuggler of
|
||
|
rents, but had taken service with King Louis of France. And as
|
||
|
if all this were not enough, he had a belt full of golden
|
||
|
guineas round his loins. Whatever my opinions, I could not look
|
||
|
on such a man without a lively interest.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And so you're a Jacobite?" said I, as I set meat before
|
||
|
him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay" said he, beginning to eat. "And you, by your long
|
||
|
face, should be a Whig?"[2]
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Betwixt and between," said I, not to annoy him; for indeed
|
||
|
I was as good a Whig as Mr. Campbell could make me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And that's naething," said he. "But I'm saying, Mr.
|
||
|
Betwixt-and-Between," he added, "this bottle of yours is dry;
|
||
|
and it's hard if I'm to pay sixty guineas and be grudged a dram
|
||
|
upon the back of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I'll go and ask for the key," said I, and stepped on deck.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The fog was as close as ever, but the swell almost down.
|
||
|
They had laid the brig to, not knowing precisely where they
|
||
|
were, and the wind (what little there was of it) not serving
|
||
|
well for their true course. Some of the hands were still
|
||
|
hearkening for breakers; but the captain and the two officers
|
||
|
were in the waist with their heads together. It struck me (I
|
||
|
don't know why) that they were after no good; and the first word
|
||
|
I heard, as I drew softly near, more than confirmed me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was Mr. Riach, crying out as if upon a sudden thought:"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Could n't we wile him out of the round-house?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He's better where he is," returned Hoseason; "he has n't
|
||
|
room to use his sword."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, that's true," said Riach; "but he's hard to come
|
||
|
at."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hut!" said Hoseason. "We can get the man in talk, one upon
|
||
|
each side, and pin him by the two arms; or if that'll not hold,
|
||
|
sir, we can make a run by both the doors and get him under hand
|
||
|
before he has the time to draw"
|
||
|
|
||
|
At this hearing, I was seized with both fear and anger at
|
||
|
these treacherous, greedy, bloody men that I sailed with. My
|
||
|
first mind was to run away; my second was bolder.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Captain," said I, "the gentleman is seeking a dram, and
|
||
|
the bottle's out. Will you give me the key?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
They all started and turned about.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, here's our chance to get the firearms!" Riach cried;
|
||
|
and then to me: "Hark ye, David," he said, "do ye ken where the
|
||
|
pistols are?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay, ay," put in Hoseason. "David kens; David's a good lad.
|
||
|
Ye see, David my man, yon wild Hielandman is a danger to the
|
||
|
ship, besides being a rank foe to King George, God bless him!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had never been so be-Davided since I came on board: but
|
||
|
I said Yes, as if all I heard were quite natural.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The trouble is," resumed the captain, "that all our
|
||
|
firelocks, great and little, are in the round-house under this
|
||
|
man's nose; likewise the powder. Now, if I, or one of the
|
||
|
officers, was to go in and take them, he would fall to thinking.
|
||
|
But a lad like you, David, might snap up a horn and a pistol or
|
||
|
two without remark. And if ye can do it cleverly, I'll bear it
|
||
|
in mind when it'll be good for you to have friends; and that's
|
||
|
when we come to Carolina."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here Mr. Riach whispered him a little.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Very right, sir," said the captain; and then to myself:"
|
||
|
And see here, David, yon man has a beltful of gold, and I give
|
||
|
you my word that you shall have your fingers in it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I told him I would do as he wished, though indeed I had
|
||
|
scarce breath to speak with; and upon that he gave me the key of
|
||
|
the spirit locker, and I began to go slowly back to the
|
||
|
round-house. What was I to do? They were dogs and thieves; they
|
||
|
had stolen me from my own country; they had killed poor Ransome;
|
||
|
and was I to hold the candle to another murder? But then, upon
|
||
|
the other hand, there was the fear of death very plain before
|
||
|
me; for what could a boy and a man, if they were as brave as
|
||
|
lions, against a whole ship's company?
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was still arguing it back and forth, and getting no great
|
||
|
clearness, when I came into the round-house and saw the Jacobite
|
||
|
eating his supper under the lamp; and at that my mind was made
|
||
|
up all in a moment. I have no credit by it; it was by no choice
|
||
|
of mine, but as if by compulsion, that I walked right up to the
|
||
|
table and put my hand on his shoulder.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do ye want to be killed?" said I. He sprang to his feet,
|
||
|
and looked a question at me as clear as if he had spoken.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"O!" cried I, "they're all murderers here; it's a ship full
|
||
|
of them! They've murdered a boy already. Now it's you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay, ay" said he; "but they have n't got me yet." And then
|
||
|
looking at me curiously, "Will ye stand with me?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That will I!" said I. "I am no thief, nor yet murderer.
|
||
|
I'll stand by you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, then," said he, "what's your name?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"David Balfour," said I; and then, thinking that a man with
|
||
|
so fine a coat must like fine people, I added for the first
|
||
|
time, "of Shaws."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It never occurred to him to doubt me, for a Highlander is
|
||
|
used to see great gentlefolk in great poverty; but as he had no
|
||
|
estate of his own, my words nettled a very childish vanity he
|
||
|
had.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My name is Stewart," he said, drawing himself up. "Alan
|
||
|
Breck, they call me. A king's name is good enough for me, though
|
||
|
I bear it plain and have the name of no farm-midden to clap to
|
||
|
the hind-end of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And having administered this rebuke, as though it were
|
||
|
something of a chief importance, he turned to examine our
|
||
|
defences.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The round-house was built very strong, to support the
|
||
|
breaching of the seas. Of its five apertures, only the skylight
|
||
|
and the two doors were large enough for the passage of a man.
|
||
|
The doors, besides, could be drawn close: they were of stout
|
||
|
oak, and ran in grooves, and were fitted with hooks to keep them
|
||
|
either shut or open, as the need arose. The one that was already
|
||
|
shut I secured in this fashion; but when I was proceeding to
|
||
|
slide to the other, Alan stopped me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"David," said he --" for I cannae bring to mind the name of
|
||
|
your landed estate, and so will make so bold as to call you
|
||
|
David -- that door, being open, is the best part of my
|
||
|
defences."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It would be yet better shut," says I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not so, David," says he. "Ye see, I have but one face; but
|
||
|
so long as that door is open and my face to it, the best part of
|
||
|
my enemies will be in front of me, where I would aye wish to
|
||
|
find them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then he gave me from the rack a cutlass (of which there
|
||
|
were a few besides the firearms), choosing it with great care,
|
||
|
shaking his head and saying he had never in all his life seen
|
||
|
poorer weapons; and next he set me down to the table with a
|
||
|
powder-horn, a bag of bullets and all the pistols, which he bade
|
||
|
me charge.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And that will be better work, let me tell you," said he,
|
||
|
"for a gentleman of decent birth, than scraping plates and
|
||
|
raxing[3] drams to a wheen tarry sailors."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thereupon he stood up in the midst with his face to the
|
||
|
door, and drawing his great sword, made trial of the room he had
|
||
|
to wield it in.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I must stick to the point," he said, shaking his head;"
|
||
|
and that's a pity, too. It does n't set my genius, which is all
|
||
|
for the upper guard. And, now" said he, "do you keep on charging
|
||
|
the pistols, and give heed to me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I told him I would listen closely. My chest was tight, my
|
||
|
mouth dry, the light dark to my eyes; the thought of the numbers
|
||
|
that were soon to leap in upon us kept my heart in a flutter:
|
||
|
and the sea, which I heard washing round the brig, and where I
|
||
|
thought my dead body would be cast ere morning, ran in my mind
|
||
|
strangely.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"First of all," said he, "how many are against us?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I reckoned them up; and such was the hurry of my mind, I
|
||
|
had to cast the numbers twice. "Fifteen," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Alan whistled. "Well," said he, "that can't be cured. And
|
||
|
now follow me. It is my part to keep this door, where I look for
|
||
|
the main battle. In that, ye have no hand. And mind and dinnae
|
||
|
fire to this side unless they get me down; for I would rather
|
||
|
have ten foes in front of me than one friend like you cracking
|
||
|
pistols at my back."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I told him, indeed I was no great shot."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And that, s very bravely said," he cried, in a great
|
||
|
admiration of my candour. "There's many a pretty gentleman that
|
||
|
wouldnae dare to say it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But then, sir" said I, "there is the door behind you"
|
||
|
which they may perhaps break in."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay," said he, "and that is a part of your work. No sooner
|
||
|
the pistols charged, than ye must climb up into yon bed where
|
||
|
ye're handy at the window; and if they lift hand, against the
|
||
|
door, ye're to shoot. But that's not all. Let's make a bit of a
|
||
|
soldier of ye, David. What else have ye to guard?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There's the skylight," said I. "But indeed, Mr. Stewart,
|
||
|
I would need to have eyes upon both sides to keep the two of
|
||
|
them; for when my face is at the one, my back is to the other."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And that's very true," said Alan. "But have ye no ears to
|
||
|
your head?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To be sure!" cried I. "I must hear the bursting of the
|
||
|
glass!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye have some rudiments of sense," said Alan, grimly.
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] Befool
|
||
|
[2] Whig or Whigamore was the cant name for those who were loyal
|
||
|
to King George.
|
||
|
[3] Reaching.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER X
|
||
|
THE SIEGE OF THE ROUND-HOUSE
|
||
|
|
||
|
BUT now our time of truce was come to an end. Those on deck had
|
||
|
waited for my coming till they grew impatient; and scarce had
|
||
|
Alan spoken, when the captain showed face in the open door.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Stand!" cried Alan, and pointed his sword at him. The
|
||
|
captain stood. indeed; but he neither winced nor drew back a
|
||
|
foot.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A naked sword?" says he. "This is a strange return for
|
||
|
hospitality."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do ye see me?" said Alan. "I am come of kings; I bear a
|
||
|
king's name. My badge is the oak. Do ye see my sword? It has
|
||
|
slashed the heads off mair Whigamores than you have toes upon
|
||
|
your feet. Call up your vermin to your back, sir, and fall on!
|
||
|
The sooner the clash begins, the sooner ye'll taste this steel
|
||
|
throughout your vitals."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The captain said nothing to Alan, but he looked over at me
|
||
|
with an ugly look. "David," said he, "I'll mind this;" and the
|
||
|
sound of his voice went through me with a jar.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Next moment he was gone.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And now," said Alan, "let your hand keep your head, for
|
||
|
the grip is coming."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Alan drew a dirk, which he held in his left hand in case
|
||
|
they should run in under his sword. I, on my part, clambered up
|
||
|
into the berth with an armful of pistols and something of a
|
||
|
heavy heart, and set open the window where I was to watch. It
|
||
|
was a small part of the deck that I could overlook, but enough
|
||
|
for our purpose. The sea had gone down, and the wind was steady
|
||
|
and kept the sails quiet; so that there was a great stillness in
|
||
|
the ship, in which I made sure I heard the sound of muttering
|
||
|
voices. A little after, and there came a clash of steel upon the
|
||
|
deck, by which I knew they were dealing out the cutlasses and
|
||
|
one had been let fall; and after that, silence again.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I do not know if I was what you call afraid; but my heart
|
||
|
beat like a bird's, both quick and little; and there was a
|
||
|
dimness came before my eyes which I continually rubbed away, and
|
||
|
which continually returned. As for hope, I had none; but only a
|
||
|
darkness of despair and a sort of anger against all the world
|
||
|
that made me long to sell my life as dear as I was able. I tried
|
||
|
to pray, I remember, but that same hurry of my mind, like a man
|
||
|
running, would not suffer me to think upon the words; and my
|
||
|
chief wish was to have the thing begin and be done with it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It came all of a sudden when it did, with a rush of feet
|
||
|
and a roar, and then a shout from Alan, and a sound of blows and
|
||
|
some one crying out as if hurt. I looked back over my shoulder,
|
||
|
and saw Mr. Shuan in the doorway, crossing blades with Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That's him that killed the boy!" I cried.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Look to your window!" said Alan; and as I turned back to
|
||
|
my place, I saw him pass his sword through the mate's body.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was none too soon for me to look to my own part; for my
|
||
|
head was scarce back at the window, before five men, carrying a
|
||
|
spare yard for a battering-ram, ran past me and took post to
|
||
|
drive the door in. I had never fired with a pistol in my life,
|
||
|
and not often with a gun; far less against a fellow-creature.
|
||
|
But it was now or never; and just as they swang the yard, I
|
||
|
cried out: "Take that!" and shot into their midst.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I must have hit one of them, for he sang out and gave back
|
||
|
a step, and the rest stopped as if a little disconcerted. Before
|
||
|
they had time to recover, I sent another ball over their heads;
|
||
|
and at my third shot (which went as wide as the second) the
|
||
|
whole party threw down the yard and ran for it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then I looked round again into the deck-house. The whole
|
||
|
place was full of the smoke of my own firing, just as my ears
|
||
|
seemed to be burst with the noise of the shots. But there was
|
||
|
Alan, standing as before; only now his sword was running blood
|
||
|
to the hilt, and himself so swelled with triumph and fallen into
|
||
|
so fine an attitude, that he looked to be invincible. Right
|
||
|
before him on the floor was Mr. Shuan, on his hands and knees;
|
||
|
the blood was pouring from his mouth, and he was sinking slowly
|
||
|
lower, with a terrible, white face; and just as I looked, some
|
||
|
of those from behind caught hold of him by the heels and dragged
|
||
|
him bodily out of the round-house. I believe he died as they
|
||
|
were doing it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There's one of your Whigs for ye!" cried Alan; and then
|
||
|
turing to me, he asked if I had done much execution.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I told him I had winged one, and thought it was the
|
||
|
captain.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And I've settled two," says he. "No, there's not enough
|
||
|
blood let; they'll be back again. To your watch, David. This was
|
||
|
but a dram before meat."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I settled back to my place, re-charging the three pistols
|
||
|
I had fired, and keeping watch with both eye and ear.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Our enemies were disputing not far off upon the deck, and
|
||
|
that so loudly that I could hear a word or two above the washing
|
||
|
of the seas.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It was Shuan bauchled[1] it," I heard one say.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And another answered him with a "Wheesht, man! He's paid
|
||
|
the piper."
|
||
|
|
||
|
After that the voices fell again into the same muttering as
|
||
|
before. Only now, one person spoke most of the time, as though
|
||
|
laying down a plan, and first one and then another answered him
|
||
|
briefly, like men taking orders. By this, I made sure they were
|
||
|
coming on again, and told Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's what we have to pray for," said he. "Unless we can
|
||
|
give them a good distaste of us, and done with it, there'll be
|
||
|
nae sleep for either you or me. But this time, mind, they'll be
|
||
|
in earnest."
|
||
|
|
||
|
By this, my pistols were ready, and there was nothing to do
|
||
|
but listen and wait. While the brush lasted, I had not the time
|
||
|
to think if I was frighted; but now, when all was still again,
|
||
|
my mind ran upon nothing else. The thought of the sharp swords
|
||
|
and the cold steel was strong in me; and presently, when I began
|
||
|
to hear stealthy steps and a brushing of men's clothes against
|
||
|
the round-house wall, and knew they were taking their places in
|
||
|
the dark, I could have found it in my mind to cry out aloud.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All this was upon Alan's side; and I had begun to think my
|
||
|
share of the fight was at an end, when I heard some one drop
|
||
|
softly on the roof above me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then there came a single call on the sea-pipe, and that was
|
||
|
the signal. A knot of them made one rush of it, cutlass in hand,
|
||
|
against the door; and at the same moment, the glass of the
|
||
|
skylight was dashed in a thousand pieces, and a man leaped
|
||
|
through and landed on the floor. Before he got his feet, I had
|
||
|
clapped a pistol to his back, and might have shot him, too; only
|
||
|
at the touch of him (and him alive) my whole flesh misgave me,
|
||
|
and I could no more pull the trigger than I could have flown.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He had dropped his cutlass as he jumped, and when he felt
|
||
|
the pistol, whipped straight round and laid hold of me, roaring
|
||
|
out an oath; and at that either my courage came again, or I grew
|
||
|
so much afraid as came to the same thing; for I gave a shriek
|
||
|
and shot him in the midst of the body. He gave the most
|
||
|
horrible, ugly groan and fell to the floor. The foot of a second
|
||
|
fellow, whose legs were dangling through the skylight, struck me
|
||
|
at the same time upon the head; and at that I snatched another
|
||
|
pistol and shot this one through the thigh, so that he slipped
|
||
|
through and tumbled in a lump on his companion's body. There was
|
||
|
no talk of missing, any more than there was time to aim; I
|
||
|
clapped the muzzle to the very place and fired.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I might have stood and stared at them for long, but I heard
|
||
|
Alan shout as if for help, and that brought me to my senses.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He had kept the door so long; but one of the seamen, while
|
||
|
he was engaged with others, had run in under his guard and
|
||
|
caught him about the body. Alan was dirking him with his left
|
||
|
hand, but the fellow clung like a leech. Anothcr had broken in
|
||
|
and had his cutlass raised. The door was thronged with their
|
||
|
faces. I thought we were lost, and catching up my cutlass, fell
|
||
|
on them in flank.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But I had not time to be of help. The wrestler dropped at
|
||
|
last; and Alan, leaping back to get his distance, ran upon the
|
||
|
others like a bull, roaring as he went. They broke before him
|
||
|
like water, turning, and running, and falling one against
|
||
|
another in their haste. The sword in his hands flashed like
|
||
|
quicksilver into the huddle of our fleeing enemies; and at every
|
||
|
flash there came the scream of a man hurt. I was still thinking
|
||
|
we were lost, when lo! they were all gone, and Alan was driving
|
||
|
them along the deck as a sheep-dog chases sheep.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Yet he was no sooner out than he was back again, being as
|
||
|
cautious as he was brave; and meanwhile the seamen continued
|
||
|
running and crying out as if he was still behind them; and we
|
||
|
heard them tumble one upon another into the forecastle, and
|
||
|
clap-to the hatch upon the top.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The round-house was like a shambles; three were dead
|
||
|
inside, another lay in his death agony across the threshold; and
|
||
|
there were Alan and I victorious and unhurt.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He came up to me with open arms. "Come to my arms!" he
|
||
|
cried, and embraced and kissed me hard upon both cheek. "David,"
|
||
|
said he, "I love you like a brother. And O, man," he cried in a
|
||
|
kind of ecstasy, "am I no a bonny fighter?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thereupon he turned to the four enemies, passed his sword
|
||
|
clean through each of them, and tumbled them out of doors one
|
||
|
after the other. As he did so, he kept humming and singing and
|
||
|
whistling to himself, like a man trying to recall an air; only
|
||
|
what he was trying was to make one. All the while, the flush was
|
||
|
in his face, and his eyes were as bright as a five-year-old
|
||
|
child's with a new toy. And presently he sat down upon the
|
||
|
table, sword in hand; the air that he was making all the time
|
||
|
began to run a little clearer, and then clearer still; and then
|
||
|
out he burst with a great voice into a Gaelic song.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I have translated it here, not in verse (of which I have no
|
||
|
skill) but at least in the king's English. He sang it often
|
||
|
afterwards, and the thing became popular; so that I have, heard
|
||
|
it, and had it explained to me, many's the time."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This is the song of the sword of Alan;
|
||
|
The smith made it,
|
||
|
The fire set it;
|
||
|
Now it shines in the hand of Alan Breck.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Their eyes were many and bright,
|
||
|
Swift were they to behold,
|
||
|
Many the hands they guided:
|
||
|
The sword was alone.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The dun deer troop over the hill,
|
||
|
They are many, the hill is one;
|
||
|
The dun deer vanish,
|
||
|
The hill remains.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Come to me from the hills of heather,
|
||
|
Come from the isles of the sea.
|
||
|
O far-beholding eagles,
|
||
|
Here is your meat.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now this song which he made (both words and music) in the
|
||
|
hour of our victory, is something less than just to me, who
|
||
|
stood beside him in the tussle. Mr. Shuan and five more were
|
||
|
either killed outright or thoroughly disabled; but of these, two
|
||
|
fell by my hand, the two that came by the skylight. Four more
|
||
|
were hurt, and of that number, one (and he not the least
|
||
|
important) got his hurt from me. So that, altogether, I did my
|
||
|
fair share both of the killing and the wounding, and might have
|
||
|
claimed a place in Alan's verses. But poets have to think upon
|
||
|
their rhymes; and in good prose talk, Alan always did me more
|
||
|
than justice.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In the meanwhile, I was innocent of any wrong being done
|
||
|
me. For not only I knew no word of the Gaelic; but what with the
|
||
|
long suspense of the waiting, and the scurry and strain of our
|
||
|
two spirts of fighting, and more than all, the horror I had of
|
||
|
some of my own share in it, the thing was no sooner over than I
|
||
|
was glad to stagger to a seat. There was that tightness on my
|
||
|
chest that I could hardly breathe; the thought of the two men I
|
||
|
had shot sat upon me like a nightmare; and all upon a sudden,
|
||
|
and before I had a guess of what was coming, I began to sob and
|
||
|
cry like any child.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Alan clapped my shoulder, and said I was a brave lad and
|
||
|
wanted nothing but a sleep.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I'll take the first watch," said he. "Ye've done well by
|
||
|
me, David, first and last; and I wouldn't lose you for all Appin
|
||
|
-- no, nor for Breadalbane."
|
||
|
|
||
|
So I made up my bed on the floor; and he took the first
|
||
|
spell, pistol in hand and sword on knee, three hours by the
|
||
|
captain's watch upon the wall. Then he roused me up, and I took
|
||
|
my turn of three hours; before the end of which it was broad
|
||
|
day, and a very quiet morning, with a smooth, rolling sea that
|
||
|
tossed the ship and made the blood run to and fro on the
|
||
|
round-house floor, and a heavy rain that drummed upon the roof.
|
||
|
All my watch there was nothing stirring; and by the banging of
|
||
|
the helm, I knew they had even no one at the tiller. Indeed (as
|
||
|
I learned afterwards) there were so many of them hurt or dead,
|
||
|
and the rest in so ill a temper, that Mr. Riach and the captain
|
||
|
had to take turn and turn like Alan and me, or the brig might
|
||
|
have gone ashore and nobody the wiser. It was a mercy the night
|
||
|
had fallen so still, for the wind had gone down as soon as the
|
||
|
rain began. Even as it was, I judged by the wailing of a great
|
||
|
number of gulls that went crying and fishing round the ship,
|
||
|
that she must have drifted pretty near the coast or one of the
|
||
|
islands of the Hebrides; and at last, looking out of the door of
|
||
|
the round-house, I saw the great stone hills of Skye on the
|
||
|
right hand, and, a little more astern, the strange isle of Rum.
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] Bungled.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XI
|
||
|
THE CAPTAIN KNUCKLES UNDER
|
||
|
|
||
|
ALAN and I sat down to breakfast about six of the clock. The
|
||
|
floor was covered with broken glass and in a horrid mess of
|
||
|
blood, which took away my hunger. In all other ways we were in
|
||
|
a situation not only agreeable but merry; having ousted the
|
||
|
officers from their own cabin, and having at command all the
|
||
|
drink in the ship -- both wine and spirits -- and all the dainty
|
||
|
part of what was eatable, such as the pickles and the fine sort
|
||
|
of bread. This, of itself, was enough to set us in good humour,
|
||
|
but the richest part of it was this, that the two thirstiest men
|
||
|
that ever came out of Scotland (Mr. Shuan being dead) were now
|
||
|
shut in the fore-part of the ship and condemned to what they
|
||
|
hated most -- cold water.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And depend upon it," Alan said, "we shall hear more of
|
||
|
them ere long. Ye may keep a man from the fighting, but never
|
||
|
from his bottle."
|
||
|
|
||
|
We made good company for each other. Alan, indeed,
|
||
|
expressed himself most lovingly; and taking a knife from the
|
||
|
table, cut me off one of the silver buttons from his coat.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I had them," says he, "from my father, Duncan Stewart; and
|
||
|
now give ye one of them to be a keepsake for last night's work.
|
||
|
And wherever ye go and show that button, the friends of Alan
|
||
|
Breck will come around you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He said this as if he had been Charlemagne, and commanded
|
||
|
armies; and indeed, much as I admired his courage, I was always
|
||
|
in danger of smiling at his vanity: in danger, I say, for had I
|
||
|
not kept my countenance, I would be afraid to think what a
|
||
|
quarrel might have followed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As soon as we were through with our meal he rummaged in the
|
||
|
captain's locker till he found a clothes-brush; and then taking
|
||
|
off his coat, began to visit his suit and brush away the stains,
|
||
|
with such care and labour as I supposed to have been only usual
|
||
|
with women. To be sure, he had no other; and, besides (as he
|
||
|
said), it belonged to a king and so behoved to be royally looked
|
||
|
after.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For all that, when I saw what care he took to pluck out the
|
||
|
threads where the button had been cut away, I put a higher value
|
||
|
on his gift.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He was still so engaged when we were hailed by Mr. Riach
|
||
|
from the deck, asking for a parley; and I, climbing through the
|
||
|
skylight and sitting on the edge of it, pistol in hand and with
|
||
|
a bold front, though inwardly in fear of broken glass, hailed
|
||
|
him back again and bade him speak out. He came to the edge of
|
||
|
the round-house, and stood on a coil of rope, so that his chin
|
||
|
was on a level with the roof; and we looked at each other awhile
|
||
|
in silence. Mr. Riach, as I do not think he had been very
|
||
|
forward in the battle, so he had got off with nothing worse than
|
||
|
a blow upon the cheek: but he looked out of heart and very
|
||
|
weary, having been all night afoot, either standing watch or
|
||
|
doctoring the wounded.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This is a bad job," said he at last, shaking his head.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It was none of our choosing," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The captain," says he, "would like to speak with your
|
||
|
friend. They might speak at the window."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And how do we know what treachery he means?" cried I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He means none, David," returned Mr. Riach, "and if he did,
|
||
|
I'll tell ye the honest truth, we couldnae get the men to
|
||
|
follow."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is that so?" said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I'll tell ye more than that," said he. "It's not only the
|
||
|
men; it's me. I'm frich'ened, Davie." And he smiled across at
|
||
|
me. "No," he continued, "what we want is to be shut of him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thereupon I consulted with Alan, and the parley was agreed
|
||
|
to and parole given upon either side; but this was not the whole
|
||
|
of Mr. Riach's business, and he now begged me for a dram with
|
||
|
such instancy and such reminders of his former kindness, that at
|
||
|
last I handed him a pannikin with about a gill of brandy. He
|
||
|
drank a part, and then carried the rest down upon the deck, to
|
||
|
share it (I suppose) with his superior.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A little after, the captain came (as was agreed) to one of
|
||
|
the windows, and stood there in the rain, with his arm in a
|
||
|
sling, and looking stern and pale, and so old that my heart
|
||
|
smote me for having fired upon him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Alan at once held a pistol in his face.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Put that thing up!" said the captain. "Have I not passed
|
||
|
my word, sir? or do ye seek to affront me?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Captain," says Alan, "I doubt your word is a breakable.
|
||
|
Last night ye haggled and argle-bargled like an apple-wife; and
|
||
|
then passed me your word, and gave me your hand to back it; and
|
||
|
ye ken very well what was the upshot. Be damned to your word!"
|
||
|
says he.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, well, sir," said the captain, "ye'll get little good
|
||
|
by swearing." (And truly that was a fault of which the captain
|
||
|
was quite free.) "But we have other things to speak," he
|
||
|
continued, bitterly. "Ye've made a sore hash of my brig; I
|
||
|
haven't hands enough left to work her; and my first officer
|
||
|
(whom I could ill spare) has got your sword throughout his
|
||
|
vitals, and passed without speech. There is nothing left me,
|
||
|
sir, but to put back into the port of Glasgow after hands; and
|
||
|
there (by your leave) ye will find them that are better able to
|
||
|
talk to you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay?" said Alan; "and faith, I'll have a talk with them
|
||
|
mysel'! Unless there's naebody speaks English in that town, I
|
||
|
have a bonny tale for them. Fifteen tarry sailors upon the one
|
||
|
side, and a man and a halfling boy upon the other! O, man, it's
|
||
|
peetiful!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Hoseason flushed red.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No," continued Alan, "that'll no do. Ye'll just have to
|
||
|
set me ashore as we agreed."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay," said Hoseason, "but my first officer is dead -- ye
|
||
|
ken best how. There's none of the rest of us acquaint with this
|
||
|
coast" sir; and it's one very dangerous to ships."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I give ye your choice," says Alan. "Set me on dry ground
|
||
|
in Appin, or Ardgour, or in Morven, or Arisaig, or Morar; or, in
|
||
|
brief, where ye please, within thirty miles of my own country;
|
||
|
except in a country of the Campbells. That's a broad target. If
|
||
|
ye miss that, ye must be as feckless at the sailoring as I have
|
||
|
found ye at the fighting. Why, my poor country people in their
|
||
|
bit cobles[1] pass from island to island in all weathers, ay,
|
||
|
and by night too, for the matter of that."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A coble's not a ship" sir" said the captain. "It has nae
|
||
|
draught of water."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, then, to Glasgow if ye list!" says Alan. "We'll have
|
||
|
the laugh of ye at the least."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My mind runs little upon laughing," said the captain. "But
|
||
|
all this will cost money, sir."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well" sir" says Alan, "I am nae weathercock. Thirty
|
||
|
guineas, if ye land me on the sea-side; and sixty, if ye put me
|
||
|
in the Linnhe Loch."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But see, sir, where we lie, we are but a few hours' sail
|
||
|
from Ardnamurchan," said Hoseason. "Give me sixty, and I'll set
|
||
|
ye there."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And I'm to wear my brogues and run jeopardy of the
|
||
|
red-coats to please you?" cries Alan. "No, sir; if ye want sixty
|
||
|
guineas earn them, and set me in my own country."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's to risk the brig, sir," said the captain, "and your
|
||
|
own lives along with her."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Take it or want it," says Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Could ye pilot us at all?" asked the captain, who was
|
||
|
frowning to himself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, it's doubtful," said Alan. "I'm more of a fighting
|
||
|
man (as ye have seen for yoursel') than a sailor-man. But I have
|
||
|
been often enough picked up and set down upon this coast, and
|
||
|
should ken something of the lie of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The captain shook his head, still frowning.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If I had lost less money on this unchancy cruise," says
|
||
|
he, "I would see you in a rope's end before I risked my brig,
|
||
|
sir. But be it as ye will. As soon as I get a slant of wind (and
|
||
|
there's some coming, or I'm the more mistaken) I'll put it in
|
||
|
hand. But there's one thing more. We may meet in with a king's
|
||
|
ship and she may lay us aboard, sir, with no blame of mine: they
|
||
|
keep the cruisers thick upon this coast, ye ken who for. Now,
|
||
|
sir, if that was to befall, ye might leave the money."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Captain," says Alan, "if ye see a pennant, it shall be
|
||
|
your part to run away. And now, as I hear you're a little short
|
||
|
of brandy in the fore-part, I'll offer ye a change: a bottle of
|
||
|
brandy against two buckets of water."
|
||
|
|
||
|
That was the last clause of the treaty, and was duly
|
||
|
executed on both sides; so that Alan and I could at last wash
|
||
|
out the round-house and be quit of the memorials of those whom
|
||
|
we had slain, and the captain and Mr. Riach could be happy again
|
||
|
in their own way, the name of which was drink.
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] Coble: a small boat used in fishing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XII
|
||
|
I HEAR OF THE "RED FOX"
|
||
|
|
||
|
BEFORE we had done cleaning out the round-house, a breeze sprang
|
||
|
up from a little to the east of north. This blew off the rain
|
||
|
and brought out the sun.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And here I must explain; and the reader would do well to
|
||
|
look at a map. On the day when the fog fell and we ran down
|
||
|
Alan's boat, we had been running through the Little Minch. At
|
||
|
dawn after the battle, we lay becalmed to the east of the Isle
|
||
|
of Canna or between that and Isle Eriska in the chain of the
|
||
|
Long Island. Now to get from there to the Linnhe Loch, the
|
||
|
straight course was through the narrows of the Sound of Mull.
|
||
|
But the captain had no chart; he was afraid to trust his brig so
|
||
|
deep among the islands; and the wind serving well, he preferred
|
||
|
to go by west of Tiree and come up under the southern coast of
|
||
|
the great Isle of Mull.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All day the breeze held in the same point, and rather
|
||
|
freshened than died down; and towards afternoon, a swell began
|
||
|
to set in from round the outer Hebrides. Our course, to go round
|
||
|
about the inner isles, was to the west of south, so that at
|
||
|
first we had this swell upon our beam, and were much rolled
|
||
|
about. But after nightfall, when we had turned the end of Tiree
|
||
|
and began to head more to the east, the sea came right astern.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Meanwhile, the early part of the day, before the swell came
|
||
|
up, was very pleasant; sailing, as we were, in a bright sunshine
|
||
|
and with many mountainous islands upon different sides. Alan and
|
||
|
I sat in the round-house with the doors open on each side (the
|
||
|
wind being straight astern), and smoked a pipe or two of the
|
||
|
captain's fine tobacco. It was at this time we heard each
|
||
|
other's stories, which was the more important to me, as I gained
|
||
|
some knowledge of that wild Highland country on which I was so
|
||
|
soon to land. In those days, so close on the back of the great
|
||
|
rebellion, it was needful a man should know what he was doing
|
||
|
when he went upon the heather.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was I that showed the example, telling him all my
|
||
|
misfortune; which he heard with great good-nature. Only, when I
|
||
|
came to mention that good friend of mine, Mr. Campbell the
|
||
|
minister, Alan fired up and cried out that he hated all that
|
||
|
were of that name.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why," said I, "he is a man you should be proud to give
|
||
|
your hand to."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I know nothing I would help a Campbell to," says he,
|
||
|
"unless it was a leaden bullet. I would hunt all of that name
|
||
|
like blackcocks. If I lay dying, I would crawl upon my knees to
|
||
|
my chamber window for a shot at one."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, Alan," I cried, "what ails ye at the Campbells?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," says he, "ye ken very well that I am an Appin
|
||
|
Stewart, and the Campbells have long harried and wasted those of
|
||
|
my name; ay, and got lands of us by treachery--but never with
|
||
|
the sword," he cried loudly, and with the word brought down his
|
||
|
fist upon the table. But I paid the less attention to this, for
|
||
|
I knew it was usually said by those who have the underhand.
|
||
|
"There's more than that," he continued, "and all in the same
|
||
|
story: lying words, lying papers, tricks fit for a peddler, and
|
||
|
the show of what's legal over all, to make a man the more
|
||
|
angry."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You that are so wasteful of your buttons," said I, "I can
|
||
|
hardly think you would be a good judge of business."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah!" says he, falling again to smiling, "I got my
|
||
|
wastefulness from the same man I got the buttons from; and that
|
||
|
was my poor father, Duncan Stewart, grace be to him! He was the
|
||
|
prettiest man of his kindred; and the best swordsman in the
|
||
|
Hielands, David, and that is the same as to say, in all the
|
||
|
world, I should ken, for it was him that taught me. He was in
|
||
|
the Black Watch, when first it was mustered; and, like other
|
||
|
gentlemen privates, had a gillie at his back to carry his
|
||
|
firelock for him on the march. Well, the King, it appears, was
|
||
|
wishful to see Hieland swordsmanship; and my father and three
|
||
|
more were chosen out and sent to London town, to let him see it
|
||
|
at the best. So they were had into the palace and showed the
|
||
|
whole art of the sword for two hours at a stretch, before King
|
||
|
George and Queen Carline, and the Butcher Cumberland, and many
|
||
|
more of whom I havenae mind. And when they were through, the
|
||
|
King (for all he was a rank usurper) spoke them fair and gave
|
||
|
each man three guineas in his hand. Now, as they were going out
|
||
|
of the palace, they had a porter's lodge to go, by; and it came
|
||
|
in on my father, as he was perhaps the first private Hieland
|
||
|
gentleman that had ever gone by that door, it was right he
|
||
|
should give the poor porter a proper notion of their quality. So
|
||
|
he gives the King's three guineas into the man's hand, as if it
|
||
|
was his common custom; the three others that came behind him did
|
||
|
the same; and there they were on the street, never a penny the
|
||
|
better for their pains. Some say it was one, that was the first
|
||
|
to fee the King's porter; and some say it was another; but the
|
||
|
truth of it is, that it was Duncan Stewart, as I am willing to
|
||
|
prove with either sword or pistol. And that was the father that
|
||
|
I had, God rest him!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I think he was not the man to leave you rich," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And that's true," said Alan. "He left me my breeks to
|
||
|
cover me, and little besides. And that was how I came to enlist,
|
||
|
which was a black spot upon my character at the best of times,
|
||
|
and would still be a sore job for me if I fell among the
|
||
|
red-coats."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What," cried I, "were you in the English army?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That was I," said Alan. "But I deserted to the right side
|
||
|
at Preston Pans -- and that's some comfort."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I could scarcely share this view: holding desertion under
|
||
|
arms for an unpardonable fault in honour. But for all I was so
|
||
|
young, I was wiser than say my thought. "Dear, dear," says I,
|
||
|
"the punishment is death."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay" said he," if they got hands on me, it would be a short
|
||
|
shrift and a lang tow for Alan! But I have the King of France's
|
||
|
commission in my pocket, which would aye be some protection."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I misdoubt it much," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have doubts mysel'," said Alan drily.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And, good heaven, man," cried I, "you that are a condemned
|
||
|
rebel, and a deserter, and a man of the French King's -- what
|
||
|
tempts ye back into this country? It's a braving of Providence."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Tut!" says Alan, "I have been back every year since
|
||
|
forty-six!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And what brings ye, man?" cried I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, ye see, I weary for my friends and country," said
|
||
|
he. "France is a braw place, nae doubt; but I weary for the
|
||
|
heather and the deer. And then I have bit things that I attend
|
||
|
to. Whiles I pick up a few lads to serve the King of France:
|
||
|
recruits, ye see; and that's aye a little money. But the heart
|
||
|
of the matter is the business of my chief, Ardshiel."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I thought they called your chief Appin," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay, but Ardshiel is the captain of the clan," said he,
|
||
|
which scarcely cleared my mind. "Ye see, David, he that was all
|
||
|
his life so great a man, and come of the blood and bearing the
|
||
|
name of kings, is now brought down to live in a French town like
|
||
|
a poor and private person. He that had four hundred swords at
|
||
|
his whistle, I have seen, with these eyes of mine, buying butter
|
||
|
in the market-place, and taking it home in a kale-leaf. This is
|
||
|
not only a pain but a disgrace to us of his family and clan.
|
||
|
There are the bairns forby, the children and the hope of Appin,
|
||
|
that must be learned their letters and how to hold a sword, in
|
||
|
that far country. Now, the tenants of Appin have to pay a rent
|
||
|
to King George; but their hearts are staunch, they are true to
|
||
|
their chief; and what with love and a bit of pressure, and maybe
|
||
|
a threat or two, the poor folk scrape up a second rent for
|
||
|
Ardshiel. Well, David, I'm the hand that carries it." And he
|
||
|
struck the belt about his body, so that the guineas rang.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do they pay both?" cried I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay, David, both," says he.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What! two rents?" I repeated.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay, David," said he. "I told a different tale to yon
|
||
|
captain man; but this is the truth of it. And it's wonderful to
|
||
|
me how little pressure is needed. But that's the handiwork of my
|
||
|
good kinsman and my father's friend, James of the Glens: James
|
||
|
Stewart, that is: Ardshiel's half-brother. He it is that gets
|
||
|
the money in, and does the management."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was the first time I heard the name of that James
|
||
|
Stewart, who was afterwards so famous at the time of his
|
||
|
hanging. But I took little heed at the moment, for all my mind
|
||
|
was occupied with the generosity of these poor Highlanders.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I call it noble," I cried. "I'm a Whig, or little better;
|
||
|
but I call it noble."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay" said he, "ye're a Whig, but ye're a gentleman; and
|
||
|
that's what does it. Now, if ye were one of the cursed race of
|
||
|
Campbell, ye would gnash your teeth to hear tell of it. If ye
|
||
|
were the Red Fox."... And at that name, his teeth shut together,
|
||
|
and he ceased speaking. I have seen many a grim face, but never
|
||
|
a grimmer than Alan's when he had named the Red Fox.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And who is the Red Fox?" I asked, daunted, but still
|
||
|
curious.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Who is he?" cried Alan. "Well, and I'll tell you that.
|
||
|
When the men of the clans were broken at Culloden, and the good
|
||
|
cause went down, and the horses rode over the fetlocks in the
|
||
|
best blood of the north, Ardshiel had to flee like a poor deer
|
||
|
upon the mountains -- he and his lady and his bairns. A sair job
|
||
|
we had of it before we got him shipped; and while he still lay
|
||
|
in the heather, the English rogues, that couldnae come at his
|
||
|
life, were striking at his rights. They stripped him of his
|
||
|
powers; they stripped him of his lands; they plucked the weapons
|
||
|
from the hands of his clansmen, that had borne arms for thirty
|
||
|
centuries; ay, and the very clothes off their backs -- so that
|
||
|
it's now a sin to wear a tartan plaid, and a man may be cast
|
||
|
into a gaol if he has but a kilt about his legs. One thing they
|
||
|
couldnae kill. That was the love the clansmen bore their chief.
|
||
|
These guineas are the proof of it. And now, in there steps a
|
||
|
man, a Campbell, red-headed Colin of Glenure ----"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is that him you call the Red Fox?" said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Will ye bring me his brush?" cries Alan, fiercely. "Ay,
|
||
|
that's the man. In he steps, and gets papers from King George,
|
||
|
to be so-called King's factor on the lands of Appin. And at
|
||
|
first he sings small, and is hail-fellow-well-met with Sheamus -
|
||
|
- that's James of the Glens, my chieftain's agent. But
|
||
|
by-and-by, that came to his ears that I have just told you; how
|
||
|
the poor commons of Appin, the farmers and the crofters and the
|
||
|
boumen, were wringing their very plaids to get a second rent,
|
||
|
and send it over-seas for Ardshiel and his poor bairns. What was
|
||
|
it ye called it, when I told ye?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I called it noble, Alan," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And you little better than a common Whig!" cries Alan.
|
||
|
"But when it came to Colin Roy, the black Campbell blood in him
|
||
|
ran wild. He sat gnashing his teeth at the wine table. What!
|
||
|
should a Stewart get a bite of bread, and him not be able to
|
||
|
prevent it? Ah! Red Fox, if ever I hold you at a gun's end, the
|
||
|
Lord have pity upon ye!" (Alan stopped to swallow down his
|
||
|
anger.) "Well, David, what does he do? He declares all the farms
|
||
|
to let. And, thinks he, in his black heart,' I'll soon get other
|
||
|
tenants that'll overbid these Stewarts, and Maccolls, and
|
||
|
Macrobs' (for these are all names in my clan, David). 'and
|
||
|
then,' thinks he, 'Ardshiel will have to hold his bonnet on a
|
||
|
French roadside.'"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," said I, "what followed?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Alan laid down his pipe, which he had long since suffered
|
||
|
to go out, and set his two hands upon his knees.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay," said he, "ye'll never guess that! For these same
|
||
|
Stewarts, and Maccolls, and Macrobs (that had two rents to pay,
|
||
|
one to King George by stark force, and one to Ardshiel by
|
||
|
natural kindness) offered him a better price than any Campbell
|
||
|
in all broad Scotland; and far he sent seeking them -- as far as
|
||
|
to the sides of Clyde and the cross of Edinburgh -- seeking, and
|
||
|
fleeching, and begging them to come, where there was a Stewart
|
||
|
to be starved and a red-headed hound of a Campbell to be
|
||
|
pleasured!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, Alan," said I, "that is a strange story, and a fine
|
||
|
one, too. And Whig as I may be, I am glad the man was beaten."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Him beaten?" echoed Alan. "It's little ye ken of
|
||
|
Campbells, and less of the Red Fox. Him beaten? No: nor will be,
|
||
|
till his blood's on the hillside! But if the day comes, David
|
||
|
man, that I can find time and leisure for a bit of hunting,
|
||
|
there grows not enough heather in all Scotland to hide him from
|
||
|
my vengeance!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Man Alan," said I, "ye are neither very wise nor very
|
||
|
Christian to blow off so many words of anger. They will do the
|
||
|
man ye call the Fox no harm, and yourself no good. Tell me your
|
||
|
tale plainly out. What did he next?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And that's a good observe, David," said Alan. "Troth and
|
||
|
indeed, they will do him no harm; the more's the pity! And
|
||
|
barring that about Christianity (of which my opinion is quite
|
||
|
otherwise, or I would be nae Christian), I am much of your
|
||
|
mind."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Opinion here or opinion there," said I, "it's a kent thing
|
||
|
that Christianity forbids revenge."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay" said he, "it's well seen it was a Campbell taught ye!
|
||
|
It would be a convenient world for them and their sort, if there
|
||
|
was no such a thing as a lad and a gun behind a heather bush!
|
||
|
But that's nothing to the point. This is what he did."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay" said I, "come to that."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, David," said he, "since he couldnae be rid of the
|
||
|
loyal commons by fair means, he swore he would be rid of them by
|
||
|
foul. Ardshiel was to starve: that was the thing he aimed at.
|
||
|
And since them that fed him in his exile wouldnae be bought out
|
||
|
-- right or wrong, he would drive them out. Therefore he sent
|
||
|
for lawyers, and papers, and red-coats to stand at his back. And
|
||
|
the kindly folk of that country must all pack and tramp, every
|
||
|
father's son out of his father's house, and out of the place
|
||
|
where he was bred and fed, and played when he was a callant. And
|
||
|
who are to succeed them? Bare-leggit beggars! King George is to
|
||
|
whistle for his rents; he maun dow with less; he can spread his
|
||
|
butter thinner: what cares Red Colin? If he can hurt Ardshiel,
|
||
|
he has his wish; if he can pluck the meat from my chieftain's
|
||
|
table, and the bit toys out of his children's hands, he will
|
||
|
gang hame singing to Glenure!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Let me have a word," said I. "Be sure, if they take less
|
||
|
rents, be sure Government has a finger in the pie. It's not this
|
||
|
Campbell's fault, man -- it's his orders. And if ye killed this
|
||
|
Colin to-morrow, what better would ye be? There would be another
|
||
|
factor in his shoes, as fast as spur can drive."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye're a good lad in a fight," said Alan; "but, man! ye
|
||
|
have Whig blood in ye!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He spoke kindly enough, but there was so much anger under
|
||
|
his contempt that I thought it was wise to change the
|
||
|
conversation. I expressed my wonder how, with the Highlands
|
||
|
covered with troops, and guarded like a city in a siege, a man
|
||
|
in his situation could come and go without arrest.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's easier than ye would think," said Alan. "A bare
|
||
|
hillside (ye see) is like all one road; if there's a sentry at
|
||
|
one place, ye just go by another. And then the heather's a great
|
||
|
help. And everywhere there are friends' houses and friends'
|
||
|
byres and haystacks. And besides, when folk talk of a country
|
||
|
covered with troops, it's but a kind of a byword at the best. A
|
||
|
soldier covers nae mair of it than his boot-soles. I have fished
|
||
|
a water with a sentry on the other side of the brae, and killed
|
||
|
a fine trout; and I have sat in a heather bush within six feet
|
||
|
of another, and learned a real bonny tune from his whistling.
|
||
|
This was it," said he, and whistled me the air."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And then, besides," he continued, "it's no sae bad now as
|
||
|
it was in forty-six. The Hielands are what they call pacified.
|
||
|
Small wonder, with never a gun or a sword left from Cantyre to
|
||
|
Cape Wrath, but what tenty[1] folk have hidden in their thatch!
|
||
|
But what I would like to ken, David, is just how long? Not long,
|
||
|
ye would think, with men like Ardshiel in exile and men like the
|
||
|
Red Fox sitting birling the wine and oppressing the poor at
|
||
|
home. But it's a kittle thing to decide what folk'll bear, and
|
||
|
what they will not. Or why would Red Colin be riding his horse
|
||
|
all over my poor country of Appin, and never a pretty lad to put
|
||
|
a bullet in him?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
And with this Alan fell into a muse, and for a long time
|
||
|
sate very sad and silent.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I will add the rest of what I have to say about my friend,
|
||
|
that he was skilled in all kinds of music, but principally pipe-
|
||
|
music; was a well-considered poet in his own tongue; had read
|
||
|
several books both in French and English; was a dead shot, a
|
||
|
good angler, and an excellent fencer with the small sword as
|
||
|
well as with his own particular weapon. For his faults, they
|
||
|
were on his face, and I now knew them all. But the worst of
|
||
|
them, his childish propensity to take offence and to pick
|
||
|
quarrels, he greatly laid aside in my case, out of regard for
|
||
|
the battle of the round-house. But whether it was because I had
|
||
|
done well myself, or because I had been a witness of his own
|
||
|
much greater prowess, is more than I can tell. For though he had
|
||
|
a great taste for courage in other men, yet he admired it most
|
||
|
in Alan Breck.
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] Careful
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XIII
|
||
|
THE LOSS OF THE BRIG
|
||
|
|
||
|
IT was already late at night, and as dark as it ever would be at
|
||
|
that season of the year (and that is to say, it was still pretty
|
||
|
bright), when Hoseason clapped his head into the round-house
|
||
|
door.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Here," said he, "come out and see if ye can pilot."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is this one of your tricks?" asked Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do I look like tricks?" cries the captain. "I have other
|
||
|
things to think of -- my brig's in danger!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
By the concerned look of his face, and, above all, by the
|
||
|
sharp tones in which he spoke of his brig, it was plain to both
|
||
|
of us he was in deadly earnest; and so Alan and I, with no great
|
||
|
fear of treachery, stepped on deck.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The sky was clear; it blew hard, and was bitter cold; a
|
||
|
great deal of daylight lingered; and the moon, which was nearly
|
||
|
full, shone brightly. The brig was close hauled, so as to round
|
||
|
the southwest corner of the Island of Mull, the hills of which
|
||
|
(and Ben More above them all, with a wisp of mist upon the top
|
||
|
of it) lay full upon the larboard bow. Though it was no good
|
||
|
point of sailing for the Covenant, she tore through the seas at
|
||
|
a great rate, pitching and straining, and pursued by the
|
||
|
westerly swell.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Altogether it was no such ill night to keep the seas in;
|
||
|
and I had begun to wonder what it was that sat so heavily upon
|
||
|
the captain, when the brig rising suddenly on the top of a high
|
||
|
swell, he pointed and cried to us to look. Away on the lee bow,
|
||
|
a thing like a fountain rose out of the moonlit sea, and
|
||
|
immediately after we heard a low sound of roaring.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do ye call that?" asked the captain, gloomily.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The sea breaking on a reef," said Alan. "And now ye ken
|
||
|
where it is; and what better would ye have?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay," said Hoseason, "if it was the only one."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And sure enough, just as he spoke there came a second
|
||
|
fountain farther to the south.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There!" said Hoseason. "Ye see for yourself. If I had kent
|
||
|
of these reefs, if I had had a chart, or if Shuan had been
|
||
|
spared, it's not sixty guineas, no, nor six hundred, would have
|
||
|
made me risk my brig in sic a stoneyard! But you, sir, that was
|
||
|
to pilot us, have ye never a word?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I'm thinking," said Alan, "these'll be what they call the
|
||
|
Torran Rocks."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Are there many of them?" says the captain.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Truly, sir, I am nae pilot," said Alan; "but it sticks in
|
||
|
my mind there are ten miles of them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Riach and the captain looked at each other.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There's a way through them, I suppose?" said the captain.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Doubtless," said Alan, "but where? But it somehow runs in
|
||
|
my mind once more that it is clearer under the land."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"So?" said Hoseason. "We'll have to haul our wind then, Mr.
|
||
|
Riach; we'll have to come as near in about the end of Mull as we
|
||
|
can take her, sir; and even then we'll have the land to kep the
|
||
|
wind off us, and that stoneyard on our lee. Well, we're in for
|
||
|
it now, and may as well crack on."
|
||
|
|
||
|
With that he gave an order to the steersman, and sent Riach
|
||
|
to the foretop. There were only five men on deck, counting the
|
||
|
officers; these being all that were fit (or, at least, both fit
|
||
|
and willing) for their work. So, as I say, it fell to Mr. Riach
|
||
|
to go aloft, and he sat there looking out and hailing the deck
|
||
|
with news of all he saw.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The sea to the south is thick," he cried; and then, after
|
||
|
a while, "it does seem clearer in by the land."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, sir," said Hoseason to Alan, "we'll try your way of
|
||
|
it. But I think I might as well trust to a blind fiddler. Pray
|
||
|
God you're right."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Pray God I am!" says Alan to me. "But where did I hear it?
|
||
|
Well, well, it will be as it must."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we got nearer to the turn of the land the reefs began to
|
||
|
be sown here and there on our very path; and Mr. Riach sometimes
|
||
|
cried down to us to change the course. Sometimes, indeed, none
|
||
|
too soon; for one reef was so close on the brig's weather board
|
||
|
that when a sea burst upon it the lighter sprays fell upon her
|
||
|
deck and wetted us like rain.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The brightness of the night showed us these perils as
|
||
|
clearly as by day, which was, perhaps, the more alarming. It
|
||
|
showed me, too, the face of the captain as he stood by the
|
||
|
steersman, now on one foot, now on the other, and sometimes
|
||
|
blowing in his hands, but still listening and looking and as
|
||
|
steady as steel. Neither he nor Mr. Riach had shown well in the
|
||
|
fighting; but I saw they were brave in their own trade, and
|
||
|
admired them all the more because I found Alan very white.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ochone, David," says he, "this is no the kind of death I
|
||
|
fancy!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What, Alan!" I cried, "you're not afraid?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No," said he, wetting his lips, "but you'll allow,
|
||
|
yourself, it's a cold ending."
|
||
|
|
||
|
By this time, now and then sheering to one side or the
|
||
|
other to avoid a reef, but still hugging the wind and the land,
|
||
|
we had got round Iona and begun to come alongside Mull. The tide
|
||
|
at the tail of the land ran very strong, and threw the brig
|
||
|
about. Two hands were put to the helm, and Hoseason himself
|
||
|
would sometimes lend a help; and it was strange to see three
|
||
|
strong men throw their weight upon the tiller, and it (like a
|
||
|
living thing) struggle against and drive them back. This would
|
||
|
have been the greater danger had not the sea been for some while
|
||
|
free of obstacles. Mr. Riach, besides, announced from the top
|
||
|
that he saw clear water ahead.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye were right," said Hoseason to Alan. "Ye have saved the
|
||
|
brig, sir. I'll mind that when we come to clear accounts." And
|
||
|
I believe he not only meant what he said, but would have done
|
||
|
it; so high a place did the Covenant hold in his affections.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But this is matter only for conjecture, things having gone
|
||
|
otherwise than he forecast.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Keep her away a point," sings out Mr. Riach. "Reef to
|
||
|
windward!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
And just at the same time the tide caught the brig, and
|
||
|
threw the wind out of her sails. She came round into the wind
|
||
|
like a top, and the next moment struck the reef with such a
|
||
|
dunch as threw us all flat upon the deck, and came near to shake
|
||
|
Mr. Riach from his place upon the mast.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was on my feet in a minute. The reef on which we had
|
||
|
struck was close in under the southwest end of Mull, off a
|
||
|
little isle they call Earraid, which lay low and black upon the
|
||
|
larboard. Sometimes the swell broke clean over us; sometimes it
|
||
|
only ground the poor brig upon the reef, so that we could hear
|
||
|
her beat herself to pieces; and what with the great noise of the
|
||
|
sails, and the singing of the wind, and the flying of the spray
|
||
|
in the moonlight, and the sense of danger, I think my head must
|
||
|
have been partly turned, for I could scarcely understand the
|
||
|
things I saw.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently I observed Mr. Riach and the seamen busy round
|
||
|
the skiff, and, still in the same blank, ran over to assist
|
||
|
them; and as soon as I set my hand to work, my mind came clear
|
||
|
again. It was no very easy task, for the skiff lay amidships and
|
||
|
was full of hamper, and the breaking of the heavier seas
|
||
|
continually forced us to give over and hold on; but we all
|
||
|
wrought like horses while we could.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Meanwhile such of the wounded as could move came clambering
|
||
|
out of the fore-scuttle and began to help; while the rest that
|
||
|
lay helpless in their bunks harrowed me with screaming and
|
||
|
begging to be saved.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The captain took no part. It seemed he was struck stupid.
|
||
|
He stood holding by the shrouds, talking to himself and groaning
|
||
|
out aloud whenever the ship hammered on the rock. His brig was
|
||
|
like wife and child to him; he had looked on, day by day, at the
|
||
|
mishandling of poor Ransome; but when it came to the brig, he
|
||
|
seemed to suffer along with her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All the time of our working at the boat, I remember only
|
||
|
one other thing: that I asked Alan, looking across at the shore,
|
||
|
what country it was; and he answered, it was the worst possible
|
||
|
for him, for it was a land of the Campbells.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had one of the wounded men told off to keep a watch upon
|
||
|
the seas and cry us warning. Well, we had the boat about ready
|
||
|
to be launched, when this man sang out pretty shrill: "For God's
|
||
|
sake, hold on!" We knew by his tone that it was someting more
|
||
|
than ordinary; and sure enough, there followed a sea so huge
|
||
|
that it lifted the brig right up and canted her over on her
|
||
|
beam. Whether the cry came too late, or my hold was too weak, I
|
||
|
know not; but at the sudden tilting of the ship I was cast clean
|
||
|
over the bulwarks into the sea.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I went down, and drank my fill, and then came up, and got
|
||
|
a blink of the moon, and then down again. They say a man sinks
|
||
|
a third time for good. I cannot be made like other folk, then;
|
||
|
for I would not like to write how often I went down, or how
|
||
|
often I came up again. All the while, I was being hurled along,
|
||
|
and beaten upon and choked, and then swallowed whole; and the
|
||
|
thing was so distracting to my wits, that I was neither sorry
|
||
|
nor afraid.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently, I found I was holding to a spar, which helped me
|
||
|
somewhat. And then all of a sudden I was in quiet water, and
|
||
|
began to come to myself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was the spare yard I had got hold of, and I was amazed
|
||
|
to see how far I had travelled from the brig. I hailed her,
|
||
|
indeed; but it was plain she was already out of cry. She was
|
||
|
still holding together; but whether or not they had yet launched
|
||
|
the boat, I was too far off and too low down to see.
|
||
|
|
||
|
While I was hailing the brig, I spied a tract of water
|
||
|
lying between us where no great waves came, but which yet boiled
|
||
|
white all over and bristled in the moon with rings and bubbles.
|
||
|
Sometimes the whole tract swung to one side, like the tail of a
|
||
|
live serpent; sometimes, for a glimpse, it would all disappear
|
||
|
and then boil up again. What it was I had no guess, which for
|
||
|
the time increased my fear of it; but I now know it must have
|
||
|
been the roost or tide race, which had carried me away so fast
|
||
|
and tumbled me about so cruelly, and at last, as if tired of
|
||
|
that play, had flung out me and the spare yard upon its landward
|
||
|
margin.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I now lay quite becalmed, and began to feel that a man can
|
||
|
die of cold as well as of drowning. The shores of Earraid were
|
||
|
close in; I could see in the moonlight the dots of heather and
|
||
|
the sparkling of the mica in the rocks.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," thought I to myself, "if I cannot get as far as
|
||
|
that, it's strange!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had no skill of swimming, Essen Water being small in our
|
||
|
neighbourhood; but when I laid hold upon the yard with both
|
||
|
arms, and kicked out with both feet, I soon begun to find that
|
||
|
I was moving. Hard work it was, and mortally slow; but in about
|
||
|
an hour of kicking and splashing, I had got well in between the
|
||
|
points of a sandy bay surrounded by low hills.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The sea was here quite quiet; there was no sound of any
|
||
|
surf; the moon shone clear; and I thought in my heart I had
|
||
|
never seen a place so desert and desolate. But it was dry land;
|
||
|
and when at last it grew so shallow that I could leave the yard
|
||
|
and wade ashore upon my feet, I cannot tell if I was more tired
|
||
|
or more grateful. Both, at least, I was: tired as I never was
|
||
|
before that night; and grateful to God as I trust I have been
|
||
|
often, though never with more cause.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XIV
|
||
|
THE ISLET
|
||
|
|
||
|
WITH my stepping ashore I began the most unhappy part of my
|
||
|
adventures. It was half-past twelve in the morning, and though
|
||
|
the wind was broken by the land, it was a cold night. I dared
|
||
|
not sit down (for I thought I should have frozen), but took off
|
||
|
my shoes and walked to and fro upon the sand, bare-foot, and
|
||
|
beating my breast with infinite weariness. There was no sound of
|
||
|
man or cattle; not a cock crew, though it was about the hour of
|
||
|
their first waking; only the surf broke outside in the distance,
|
||
|
which put me in mind of my perils and those of my friend. To
|
||
|
walk by the sea at that hour of the morning, and in a place so
|
||
|
desert-like and lonesome, struck me with a kind of fear.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As soon as the day began to break I put on my shoes and
|
||
|
climbed a hill -- the ruggedest scramble I ever undertook--
|
||
|
falling, the whole way, between big blocks of granite, or
|
||
|
leaping from one to another. When I got to the top the dawn was
|
||
|
come. There was no sign of the brig, which must have lifted from
|
||
|
the reef and sunk. The boat, too, was nowhere to be seen. There
|
||
|
was never a sail upon the ocean; and in what I could see of the
|
||
|
land was neither house nor man.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was afraid to think what had befallen my shipmates, and
|
||
|
afraid to look longer at so empty a scene. What with my wet
|
||
|
clothes and weariness, and my belly that now began to ache with
|
||
|
hunger, I had enough to trouble me without that. So I set off
|
||
|
eastward along the south coast, hoping to find a house where I
|
||
|
might warm myself, and perhaps get news of those I had lost. And
|
||
|
at the worst, I considered the sun would soon rise and dry my
|
||
|
clothes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
After a little, my way was stopped by a creek or inlet of
|
||
|
the sea, which seemed to run pretty deep into the land; and as
|
||
|
I had no means to get across, I must needs change my direction
|
||
|
to go about the end of it. It was still the roughest kind of
|
||
|
walking; indeed the whole, not only of Earraid, but of the
|
||
|
neighbouring part of Mull (which they call the Ross) is nothing
|
||
|
but a jumble of granite rocks with heather in among. At first
|
||
|
the creek kept narrowing as I had looked to see; but presently
|
||
|
to my surprise it began to widen out again. At this I scratched
|
||
|
my head, but had still no notion of the truth: until at last I
|
||
|
came to a rising ground, and it burst upon me all in a moment
|
||
|
that I was cast upon a little barren isle, and cut off on every
|
||
|
side by the salt seas.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Instead of the sun rising to dry me, it came on to rain,
|
||
|
with a thick mist; so that my case was lamentable.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I stood in the rain, and shivered, and wondered what to do,
|
||
|
till it occurred to me that perhaps the creek was fordable. Back
|
||
|
I went to the narrowest point and waded in. But not three yards
|
||
|
from shore, I plumped in head over ears; and if ever I was heard
|
||
|
of more, it was rather by God's grace than my own prudence. I
|
||
|
was no wetter (for that could hardly be), but I was all the
|
||
|
colder for this mishap; and having lost another hope was the
|
||
|
more unhappy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And now, all at once, the yard came in my head. What had
|
||
|
carried me through the roost would surely serve me to cross this
|
||
|
little quiet creek in safety. With that I set off, undaunted,
|
||
|
across the top of the isle, to fetch and carry it back. It was
|
||
|
a weary tramp in all ways, and if hope had not buoyed me up, I
|
||
|
must have cast myself down and given up. Whether with the sea
|
||
|
salt, or because I was growing fevered, I was distressed with
|
||
|
thirst, and had to stop, as I went, and drink the peaty water
|
||
|
out of the hags.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I came to the bay at last, more dead than alive; and at the
|
||
|
first glance, I thought the yard was something farther out than
|
||
|
when I left it. In I went, for the third time, into the sea. The
|
||
|
sand was smooth and firm, and shelved gradually down, so that I
|
||
|
could wade out till the water was almost to my neck and the
|
||
|
little waves splashed into my face. But at that depth my feet
|
||
|
began to leave me, and I durst venture in no farther. As for the
|
||
|
yard, I saw it bobbing very quietly some twenty feet beyond.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had borne up well until this last disappointment; but at
|
||
|
that I came ashore, and flung myself down upon the sands and
|
||
|
wept.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The time I spent upon the island is still so horrible a
|
||
|
thought to me, that I must pass it lightly over. In all the
|
||
|
books I have read of people cast away, they had either their
|
||
|
pockets full of tools, or a chest of things would be thrown upon
|
||
|
the beach along with them, as if on purpose. My case was very
|
||
|
different. I had nothing in my pockets but money and Alan's
|
||
|
silver button; and being inland bred, I was as much short of
|
||
|
knowledge as of means.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I knew indeed that shell-fish were counted good to eat; and
|
||
|
among the rocks of the isle I found a great plenty of limpets,
|
||
|
which at first I could scarcely strike from their places, not
|
||
|
knowing quickness to be needful. There were, besides, some of
|
||
|
the little shells that we call buckies; I think periwinkle is
|
||
|
the English name. Of these two I made my whole diet, devouring
|
||
|
them cold and raw as I found them; and so hungry was I, that at
|
||
|
first they seemed to me delicious.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Perhaps they were out of season, or perhaps there was
|
||
|
something wrong in the sea about my island. But at least I had
|
||
|
no sooner eaten my first meal than I was seized with giddiness
|
||
|
and retching, and lay for a long time no better than dead. A
|
||
|
second trial of the same food (indeed I had no other) did better
|
||
|
with me, and revived my strength. But as long as I was on the
|
||
|
island, I never knew what to expect when I had eaten; sometimes
|
||
|
all was well, and sometimes I was thrown into a miserable
|
||
|
sickness; nor could I ever distinguish what particular fish it
|
||
|
was that hurt me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All day it streamed rain; the island ran like a sop, there
|
||
|
was no dry spot to be found; and when I lay down that night,
|
||
|
between two boulders that made a kind of roof, my feet were in
|
||
|
a bog.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The second day I crossed the island to all sides. There was
|
||
|
no one part of it better than another; it was all desolate and
|
||
|
rocky; nothing living on it but game birds which I lacked the
|
||
|
means to kill, and the gulls which haunted the outlying rocks in
|
||
|
a prodigious number. But the creek, or strait, that cut off the
|
||
|
isle from the main-land of the Ross, opened out on the north
|
||
|
into a bay, and the bay again opened into the Sound of Iona; and
|
||
|
it was the neighbourhood of this place that I chose to be my
|
||
|
home; though if I had thought upon the very name of home in such
|
||
|
a spot, I must have burst out weeping.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had good reasons for my choice. There was in this part of
|
||
|
the isle a little hut of a house like a pig's hut, where fishers
|
||
|
used to sleep when they came there upon their business; but the
|
||
|
turf roof of it had fallen entirely in; so that the hut was of
|
||
|
no use to me, and gave me less shelter than my rocks. What was
|
||
|
more important, the shell-fish on which I lived grew there in
|
||
|
great plenty; when the tide was out I could gather a peck at a
|
||
|
time: and this was doubtless a convenience. But the other reason
|
||
|
went deeper. I had become in no way used to the horrid solitude
|
||
|
of the isle, but still looked round me on all sides (like a man
|
||
|
that was hunted), between fear and hope that I might see some
|
||
|
human creature coming. Now, from a little up the hillside over
|
||
|
the bay, I could catch a sight of the great, ancient church and
|
||
|
the roofs of the people's houses in Iona. And on the other hand,
|
||
|
over the low country of the Ross, I saw smoke go up, morning and
|
||
|
evening, as if from a homestead in a hollow of the land.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I used to watch this smoke, when I was wet and cold, and
|
||
|
had my head half turned with loneliness; and think of the
|
||
|
fireside and the company, till my heart burned. It was the same
|
||
|
with the roofs of Iona. Altogether, this sight I had of men's
|
||
|
homes and comfortable lives, although it put a point on my own
|
||
|
sufferings, yet it kept hope alive, and helped me to eat my raw
|
||
|
shell-fish (which had soon grown to be a disgust), and saved me
|
||
|
from the sense of horror I had whenever I was quite alone with
|
||
|
dead rocks, and fowls, and the rain, and the cold sea.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I say it kept hope alive; and indeed it seemed impossible
|
||
|
that I should be left to die on the shores of my own country,
|
||
|
and within view of a church-tower and the smoke of men's houses.
|
||
|
But the second day passed; and though as long as the light
|
||
|
lasted I kept a bright look-out for boats on the Sound or men
|
||
|
passing on the Ross, no help came near me. It still rained, and
|
||
|
I turned in to sleep, as wet as ever, and with a cruel sore
|
||
|
throat, but a little comforted, perhaps, by having said
|
||
|
good-night to my next neighbours, the people of Iona.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Charles the Second declared a man could stay outdoors more
|
||
|
days in the year in the climate of England than in any other.
|
||
|
This was very like a king, with a palace at his back and changes
|
||
|
of dry clothes. But he must have had better luck on his flight
|
||
|
from Worcester than I had on that miserable isle. It was the
|
||
|
height of the summer; yet it rained for more than twenty-four
|
||
|
hours, and did not clear until the afternoon of the third day.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was the day of incidents. In the morning I saw a red
|
||
|
deer, a buck with a fine spread of antlers, standing in the rain
|
||
|
on the top of the island; but he had scarce seen me rise from
|
||
|
under my rock, before he trotted off upon the other side. I
|
||
|
supposed he must have swum the strait; though what should bring
|
||
|
any creature to Earraid, was more than I could fancy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A little after, as I was jumping about after my limpets, I
|
||
|
was startled by a guinea-piece, which fell upon a rock in front
|
||
|
of me and glanced off into the sea. When the sailors gave me my
|
||
|
money again, they kept back not only about a third of the whole
|
||
|
sum, but my father's leather purse; so that from that day out,
|
||
|
I carried my gold loose in a pocket with a button. I now saw
|
||
|
there must be a hole, and clapped my hand to the place in a
|
||
|
great hurry. But this was to lock the stable door after the
|
||
|
steed was stolen. I had left the shore at Queensferry with near
|
||
|
on fifty pounds; now I found no more than two guinea-pieces and
|
||
|
a silver shilling.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It is true I picked up a third guinea a little after, where
|
||
|
it lay shining on a piece of turf. That made a fortune of three
|
||
|
pounds and four shillings, English money, for a lad, the
|
||
|
rightful heir of an estate, and now starving on an isle at the
|
||
|
extreme end of the wild Highlands.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This state of my affairs dashed me still further; and,
|
||
|
indeed my plight on that third morning was truly pitiful. My
|
||
|
clothes were beginning to rot; my stockings in particular were
|
||
|
quite worn through, so that my shanks went naked; my hands had
|
||
|
grown quite soft with the continual soaking; my throat was very
|
||
|
sore, my strength had much abated, and my heart so turned
|
||
|
against the horrid stuff I was condemned to eat, that the very
|
||
|
sight of it came near to sicken me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And yet the worst was not yet come.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There is a pretty high rock on the northwest of Earraid,
|
||
|
which (because it had a flat top and overlooked the Sound) I was
|
||
|
much in the habit of frequenting; not that ever I stayed in one
|
||
|
place, save when asleep, my misery giving me no rest. Indeed, I
|
||
|
wore myself down with continual and aimless goings and comings
|
||
|
in the rain.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As soon, however, as the sun came out, I lay down on the
|
||
|
top of that rock to dry myself. The comfort of the sunshine is
|
||
|
a thing I cannot tell. It set me thinking hopefully of my
|
||
|
deliverance, of which I had begun to despair; and I scanned the
|
||
|
sea and the Ross with a fresh interest. On the south of my rock,
|
||
|
a part of the island jutted out and hid the open ocean, so that
|
||
|
a boat could thus come quite near me upon that side, and I be
|
||
|
none the wiser.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Well, all of a sudden, a coble with a brown sail and a pair
|
||
|
of fishers aboard of it, came flying round that corner of the
|
||
|
isle, bound for Iona. I shouted out, and then fell on my knees
|
||
|
on the rock and reached up my hands and prayed to them. They
|
||
|
were near enough to hear -- I could even see the colour of their
|
||
|
hair; and there was no doubt but they observed me, for they
|
||
|
cried out in the Gaelic tongue, and laughed. But the boat never
|
||
|
turned aside, and flew on, right before my eyes, for Iona.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I could not believe such wickedness, and ran along the
|
||
|
shore from rock to rock, crying on them piteously. even after
|
||
|
they were out of reach of my voice, I still cried and waved to
|
||
|
them; and when they were quite gone, I thought my heart would
|
||
|
have burst. All the time of my troubles I wept only twice. Once,
|
||
|
when I could not reach the yard, and now, the second time, when
|
||
|
these fishers turned a deaf ear to my cries. But this time I
|
||
|
wept and roared like a wicked child, tearing up the turf with my
|
||
|
nails, and grinding my face in the earth. If a wish would kill
|
||
|
men, those two fishers would never have seen morning, and I
|
||
|
should likely have died upon my island.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I was a little over my anger, I must eat again, but
|
||
|
with such loathing of the mess as I could now scarce control.
|
||
|
Sure enough, I should have done as well to fast, for my fishes
|
||
|
poisoned me again. I had all my first pains; my throat was so
|
||
|
sore I could scarce swallow; I had a fit of strong shuddering,
|
||
|
which clucked my teeth together; and there came on me that
|
||
|
dreadful sense of illness, which we have no name for either in
|
||
|
Scotch or English. I thought I should have died, and made my
|
||
|
peace with God, forgiving all men, even my uncle and the
|
||
|
fishers; and as soon as I had thus made up my mind to the worst,
|
||
|
clearness came upon me; I observed the night was falling dry; my
|
||
|
clothes were dried a good deal; truly, I was in a better case
|
||
|
than ever before, since I had landed on the isle; and so I got
|
||
|
to sleep at last, with a thought of gratitude.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The next day (which was the fourth of this horrible life of
|
||
|
mine) I found my bodily strength run very low. But the sun
|
||
|
shone, the air was sweet, and what I managed to eat of the
|
||
|
shell-fish agreed well with me and revived my courage.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was scarce back on my rock (where I went always the first
|
||
|
thing after I had eaten) before I observed a boat coming down
|
||
|
the Sound, and with her head, as I thought, in my direction.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I began at once to hope and fear exceedingly; for I thought
|
||
|
these men might have thought better of their cruelty and be
|
||
|
coming back to my assistance. But another disappointment, such
|
||
|
as yesterday's, was more than I could bear. I turned my back,
|
||
|
accordingly, upon the sea, and did not look again till I had
|
||
|
counted many hundreds. The boat was still heading for the
|
||
|
island. The next time I counted the full thousand, as slowly as
|
||
|
I could, my heart beating so as to hurt me. And then it was out
|
||
|
of all question. She was coming straight to Earraid!
|
||
|
|
||
|
I could no longer hold myself back, but ran to the seaside
|
||
|
and out, from one rock to another, as far as I could go. It is
|
||
|
a marvel I was not drowned; for when I was brought to a stand at
|
||
|
last, my legs shook under me, and my mouth was so dry, I must
|
||
|
wet it with the sea-water before I was able to shout.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All this time the boat was coming on; and now I was able to
|
||
|
perceive it was the same boat and the same two men as yesterday.
|
||
|
This I knew by their hair, which the one had of a bright yellow
|
||
|
and the other black. But now there was a third man along with
|
||
|
them, who looked to be of a better class.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As soon as they were come within easy speech, they let down
|
||
|
their sail and lay quiet. In spite of my supplications, they
|
||
|
drew no nearer in, and what frightened me most of all, the new
|
||
|
man tee-hee'd with laughter as he talked and looked at me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then he stood up in the boat and addressed me a long while,
|
||
|
speaking fast and with many wavings of his hand. I told him I
|
||
|
had no Gaelic; and at this he became very angry, and I began to
|
||
|
suspect he thought he was talking English. Listening very close,
|
||
|
I caught the word "whateffer" several times; but all the rest
|
||
|
was Gaelic and might have been Greek and Hebrew for me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Whatever," said I, to show him I had caught a word.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, yes -- yes, yes," says he, and then he looked at the
|
||
|
other men, as much as to say, "I told you I spoke English," and
|
||
|
began again as hard as ever in the Gaelic.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This time I picked out another word, "tide." Then I had a
|
||
|
flash of hope. I remembered he was always waving his hand
|
||
|
towards the mainland of the Ross.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you mean when the tide is out --?" I cried, and could
|
||
|
not finish.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, yes," said he. "Tide."
|
||
|
|
||
|
At that I turned tail upon their boat (where my adviser had
|
||
|
once more begun to tee-hee with laughter), leaped back the way
|
||
|
I had come, from one stone to another, and set off running
|
||
|
across the isle as I had never run before. In about half an hour
|
||
|
I came out upon the shores of the creek; and, sure enough, it
|
||
|
was shrunk into a little trickle of water, through which I
|
||
|
dashed, not above my knees, and landed with a shout on the main
|
||
|
island.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A sea-bred boy would not have stayed a day on Earraid;
|
||
|
which is only what they call a tidal islet, and except in the
|
||
|
bottom of the neaps, can be entered and left twice in every
|
||
|
twenty-four hours, either dry-shod, or at the most by wading.
|
||
|
Even I, who had the tide going out and in before me in the bay,
|
||
|
and even watchcd for the ebbs, the better to get my shellfish --
|
||
|
even I (I say) if I had sat down to think, instead of raging at
|
||
|
my fate, must have soon guessed the secret, and got free. It was
|
||
|
no wonder the fishers had not understood me. The wonder was
|
||
|
rather that they had ever guessed my pitiful illusion, and taken
|
||
|
the trouble to come back. I had starved with cold and hunger on
|
||
|
that island for close upon one hundred hours. But for the
|
||
|
fishers, I might have left my bones there, in pure folly. And
|
||
|
even as it was, I had paid for it pretty dear, not only in past
|
||
|
sufferings, but in my present case; being clothed like a
|
||
|
beggar-man, scarce able to walk, and in great pain of my sore
|
||
|
throat.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I have seen wicked men and fools, a great many of both; and
|
||
|
I believe they both get paid in the end; but the fools first.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XV
|
||
|
THE LAD WITH THE SILVER BUTTON: THROUGH THE ISLE OF MULL
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE Ross of Mull, which I had now got upon, was rugged and
|
||
|
trackless, like the isle I had just left; being all bog, and
|
||
|
brier, and big stone. There may be roads for them that know that
|
||
|
country well; but for my part I had no better guide than my own
|
||
|
nose, and no other landmark than Ben More.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I aimed as well as I could for the smoke I had seen so
|
||
|
often from the island; and with all my great weariness and the
|
||
|
difficulty of the way came upon the house in the bottom of a
|
||
|
little hollow about five or six at night. It was low and
|
||
|
longish, roofed with turf and built of unmortared stones; and on
|
||
|
a mound in front of it, an old gentleman sat smoking his pipe in
|
||
|
the sun.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With what little English he had, he gave me to understand
|
||
|
that my shipmates had got safe ashore, and had broken bread in
|
||
|
that very house on the day after.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Was there one," I asked, "dressed like a gentleman?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He said they all wore rough great-coats; but to be sure,
|
||
|
the first of them, the one that came alone, wore breeches and
|
||
|
stockings, while the rest had sailors' trousers.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah," said I, "and he would have a feathered hat?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He told me, no, that he was bareheaded like myself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At first I thought Alan might have lost his hat; and then
|
||
|
the rain came in my mind, and I judged it more likely he had it
|
||
|
out of harm's way under his great-coat. This set me smiling,
|
||
|
partly because my friend was safe, partly to think of his vanity
|
||
|
in dress.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And then the old gentleman clapped his hand to his brow,
|
||
|
and cried out that I must be the lad with the silver button.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, yes!" said I, in some wonder.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, then," said the old gentleman, "I have a word for
|
||
|
you, that you are to follow your friend to his country, by
|
||
|
Torosay."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He then asked me how I had fared, and I told him my tale.
|
||
|
A south-country man would certainly have laughed; but this old
|
||
|
gentleman (I call him so because of his manners, for his clothes
|
||
|
were dropping off his back) heard me all through with nothing
|
||
|
but gravity and pity. When I had done, he took me by the hand,
|
||
|
led me into his hut (it was no better) and presented me before
|
||
|
his wife, as if she had been the Queen and I a duke.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The good woman set oat-bread before me and a cold grouse,
|
||
|
patting my shoulder and smiling to me all the time, for she had
|
||
|
no English; and the old gentleman (not to be behind) brewed me
|
||
|
a strong punch out of their country spirit. All the while I was
|
||
|
eating, and after that when I was drinking the punch, I could
|
||
|
scarce come to believe in my good fortune; and the house, though
|
||
|
it was thick with the peat-smoke and as full of holes as a
|
||
|
colander, seemed like a palace.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The punch threw me in a strong sweat and a deep slumber;
|
||
|
the good people let me lie; and it was near noon of the next day
|
||
|
before I took the road, my throat already easier and my spirits
|
||
|
quite restored by good fare and good news. The old gentleman,
|
||
|
although I pressed him hard, would take no money, and gave me an
|
||
|
old bonnet for my head; though I am free to own I was no sooner
|
||
|
out of view of the house than I very jealously washed this gift
|
||
|
of his in a wayside fountain.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thought I to myself: "If these are the wild Highlanders, I
|
||
|
could wish my own folk wilder."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I not only started late, but I must have wandered nearly
|
||
|
half the time. True, I met plenty of people, grubbing in little
|
||
|
miserable fields that would not keep a cat, or herding little
|
||
|
kine about the bigness of asses. The Highland dress being
|
||
|
forbidden by law since the rebellion, and the people condemned
|
||
|
to the Lowland habit, which they much disliked, it was strange
|
||
|
to see the variety of their array. Some went bare, only for a
|
||
|
hanging cloak or great-coat, and carried their trousers on their
|
||
|
backs like a useless burthen: some had made an imitation of the
|
||
|
tartan with little parti-coloured stripes patched together like
|
||
|
an old wife's quilt; others, again, still wore the Highland
|
||
|
philabeg, but by putting a few stitches between the legs
|
||
|
transformed it into a pair of trousers like a Dutchman's. All
|
||
|
those makeshifts were condemned and punished, for the law was
|
||
|
harshly applied, in hopes to break up the clan spirit; but in
|
||
|
that out-of-the-way, sea-bound isle, there were few to make
|
||
|
remarks and fewer to tell tales.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They seemed in great poverty; which was no doubt natural,
|
||
|
now that rapine was put down, and the chiefs kept no longer an
|
||
|
open house; and the roads (even such a wandering, country by-
|
||
|
-track as the one I followed) were infested with beggars. And
|
||
|
here again I marked a difference from my own part of the
|
||
|
country. For our Lowland beggars -- even the gownsmen
|
||
|
themselves, who beg by patent -- had a louting, flattering way
|
||
|
with them, and if you gave them a plaek and asked change, would
|
||
|
very civilly return you a boddle. But these Highland beggars
|
||
|
stood on their dignity, asked alms only to buy snuff (by their
|
||
|
account) and would give no change.
|
||
|
|
||
|
To be sure, this was no concern of mine, except in so far
|
||
|
as it entertained me by the way. What was much more to the
|
||
|
purpose, few had any English, and these few (unless they were of
|
||
|
the brotherhood of beggars) not very anxious to place it at my
|
||
|
service. I knew Torosay to be my destination, and repeated the
|
||
|
name to them and pointed; but instead of simply pointing in
|
||
|
reply, they would give me a screed of the Gaelic that set me
|
||
|
foolish; so it was small wonder if I went out of my road as
|
||
|
often as I stayed in it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At last, about eight at night, and already very weary, I
|
||
|
came to a lone house, where I asked admittance, and was refused,
|
||
|
until I bethought me of the power of money in so poor a country,
|
||
|
and held up one of my guineas in my finger and thumb. Thereupon,
|
||
|
the man of the house, who had hitherto pretended to have no
|
||
|
English, and driven me from his door by signals, suddenly began
|
||
|
to speak as clearly as was needful, and agreed for five
|
||
|
shillings to give me a night's lodging and guide me the next day
|
||
|
to Torosay.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I slept uneasily that night, fearing I should be robbed;
|
||
|
but I might have spared myself the pain; for my host was no
|
||
|
robber, only miserably poor and a great cheat. He was not alone
|
||
|
in his poverty; for the next morning, we must go five miles
|
||
|
about to the house of what he called a rich man to have one of
|
||
|
my guineas changed. This was perhaps a rich man for Mull; he
|
||
|
would have scarce been thought so in the south; for it took all
|
||
|
he had -- the whole house was turned upside down, and a
|
||
|
neighbour brought under contribution, before he could scrape
|
||
|
together twenty shillings in silver. The odd shilling he kept
|
||
|
for himself, protesting he could ill afford to have so great a
|
||
|
sum of money lying "locked up." For all that he was very
|
||
|
courteous and well spoken, made us both sit down with his family
|
||
|
to dinner, and brewed punch in a fine china bowl, over which my
|
||
|
rascal guide grew so merry that he refused to start.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was for getting angry, and appealed to the rich man
|
||
|
(Hector Maclean was his name), who had been a witness to our
|
||
|
bargain and to my payment of the five shillings. But Maclean had
|
||
|
taken his share of the punch, and vowed that no gentleman should
|
||
|
leave his table after the bowl was brewed; so there was nothing
|
||
|
for it but to sit and hear Jacobite toasts and Gaelic songs,
|
||
|
till all were tipsy and staggered off to the bed or the barn for
|
||
|
their night's rest.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Next day (the fourth of my travels) we were up before five
|
||
|
upon the clock; but my rascal guide got to the bottle at once,
|
||
|
and it was three hours before I had him clear of the house, and
|
||
|
then (as you shall hear) only for a worse disappointment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As long as we went down a heathery valley that lay before
|
||
|
Mr. Maclean's house, all went well; only my guide looked
|
||
|
constantly over his shoulder, and when I asked him the cause,
|
||
|
only grinned at me. No sooner, however, had we crossed the back
|
||
|
of a hill, and got out of sight of the house windows, than he
|
||
|
told me Torosay lay right in front, and that a hill-top (which
|
||
|
he pointed out) was my best landmark.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I care very little for that," said I, "since you are going
|
||
|
with me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The impudent cheat answered me in the Gaelic that he had no
|
||
|
English.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My fine fellow," I said, "I know very well your English
|
||
|
comes and goes. Tell me what will bring it back? Is it more
|
||
|
money you wish?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Five shillings mair," said he, "and hersel' will bring ye
|
||
|
there."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I reflected awhile and then offered him two, which he
|
||
|
accepted greedily, and insisted on having in his hands at once
|
||
|
"for luck," as he said, but I think it was rather for my
|
||
|
misfortune.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The two shillings carried him not quite as many miles; at
|
||
|
the end of which distance, he sat down upon the wayside and took
|
||
|
off his brogues from his feet, like a man about to rest.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was now red-hot. "Ha!" said I, "have you no more
|
||
|
English?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He said impudently, "No."
|
||
|
|
||
|
At that I boiled over, and lifted my hand to strike him;
|
||
|
and he, drawing a knife from his rags, squatted back and grinned
|
||
|
at me like a wildcat. At that, forgetting everything but my
|
||
|
anger, I ran in upon him, put aside his knife with my left, and
|
||
|
struck him in the mouth with the right. I was a strong lad and
|
||
|
very angry, and he but a little man; and he went down before me
|
||
|
heavily. By good luck, his knife flew out of his hand as he
|
||
|
fell.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I picked up both that and his brogues, wished him a good
|
||
|
morning, and set off upon my way, leaving him barefoot and
|
||
|
disarmed. I chuckled to myself as I went, being sure I was done
|
||
|
with that rogue, for a variety of reasons. First, he knew he
|
||
|
could have no more of my money; next, the brogues were worth in
|
||
|
that country only a few pence; and, lastly, the knife, which was
|
||
|
really a dagger, it was against the law for him to carry.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In about half an hour of walk, I overtook a great, ragged
|
||
|
man, moving pretty fast but feeling before him with a staff. He
|
||
|
was quite blind, and told me he was a catechist, which should
|
||
|
have put me at my ease. But his face went against me; it seemed
|
||
|
dark and dangerous and secret; and presently, as we began to go
|
||
|
on alongside, I saw the steel butt of a pistol sticking from
|
||
|
under the flap of his coat-pocket. To carry such a thing meant
|
||
|
a fine of fifteen pounds sterling upon a first offence, and
|
||
|
transportation to the colonies upon a second. Nor could I quite
|
||
|
see why a religious teacher should go armed, or what a blind man
|
||
|
could be doing with a pistol.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I told him about my guide, for I was proud of what I had
|
||
|
done, and my vanity for once got the heels of my prudence. At
|
||
|
the mention of the five shillings he cried out so loud that I
|
||
|
made up my mind I should say nothing of the other two, and was
|
||
|
glad he could not see my blushes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Was it too much?" I asked, a little faltering.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Too much!" cries he. "Why, I will guide you to Torosay
|
||
|
myself for a dram of brandy. And give you the great pleasure of
|
||
|
my company (me that is a man of some learning) in the bargain."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I said I did not see how a blind man could be a guide; but
|
||
|
at that he laughed aloud, and said his stick was eyes enough for
|
||
|
an eagle.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In the Isle of Mull, at least," says he, "where I know
|
||
|
every stone and heather-bush by mark of head. See, now," he
|
||
|
said, striking right and left, as if to make sure, "down there
|
||
|
a burn is running; and at the head of it there stands a bit of
|
||
|
a small hill with a stone cocked upon the top of that; and it's
|
||
|
hard at the foot of the hill, that the way runs by to Torosay;
|
||
|
and the way here, being for droves, is plainly trodden, and will
|
||
|
show grassy through the heather."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had to own he was right in every feature, and told my
|
||
|
wonder.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ha!" says he, "that's nothing. Would ye believe me now,
|
||
|
that before the Act came out, and when there were weepons in
|
||
|
this country, I could shoot? Ay, could I!" cries he, and then
|
||
|
with a leer: "If ye had such a thing as a pistol here to try
|
||
|
with, I would show ye how it's done."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I told him I had nothing of the sort, and gave him a wider
|
||
|
berth. If he had known, his pistol stuck at that time quite
|
||
|
plainly out of his pocket, and I could see the sun twinkle on
|
||
|
the steel of the butt. But by the better luck for me, he knew
|
||
|
nothing, thought all was covered, and lied on in the dark.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He then began to question me cunningly, where I came from,
|
||
|
whether I was rich, whether I could change a five-shilling piece
|
||
|
for him (which he declared he had that moment in his sporran),
|
||
|
and all the time he kept edging up to me and I avoiding him. We
|
||
|
were now upon a sort of green cattle-track which crossed the
|
||
|
hills towards Torosay, and we kept changing sides upon that like
|
||
|
dancers in a reel. I had so plainly the upper-hand that my
|
||
|
spirits rose, and indeed I took a pleasure in this game of
|
||
|
blindman's buff; but the catechist grew angrier and angrier, and
|
||
|
at last began to swear in Gaelic and to strike for my legs with
|
||
|
his staff.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then I told him that, sure enough, I had a pistol in my
|
||
|
pocket as well as he, and if he did not strike across the hill
|
||
|
due south I would even blow his brains out.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He became at once very polite, and after trying to soften
|
||
|
me for some time, but quite in vain, he cursed me once more in
|
||
|
Gaelic and took himself off. I watched him striding along,
|
||
|
through bog and brier, tapping with his stick, until he turned
|
||
|
the end of a hill and disappeared in the next hollow. Then I
|
||
|
struck on again for Torosay, much better pleased to be alone
|
||
|
than to travel with that man of learning. This was an unlucky
|
||
|
day; and these two, of whom I had just rid myself, one after the
|
||
|
other, were the two worst men I met with in the Highlands.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At Torosay, on the Sound of Mull and looking over to the
|
||
|
mainland of Morven, there was an inn with an innkeeper, who was
|
||
|
a Maclean, it appeared, of a very high family; for to keep an
|
||
|
inn is thought even more genteel in the Highlands than it is
|
||
|
with us, perhaps as partaking of hospitality, or perhaps because
|
||
|
the trade is idle and drunken. He spoke good English, and
|
||
|
finding me to be something of a scholar, tried me first in
|
||
|
French, where he easily beat me, and then in the Latin, in which
|
||
|
I don't know which of us did best. This pleasant rivalry put us
|
||
|
at once upon friendly terms; and I sat up and drank punch with
|
||
|
him (or to be more correct, sat up and watched him drink it),
|
||
|
until he was so tipsy that he wept upon my shoulder.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I tried him, as if by accident, with a sight of Alan's
|
||
|
button; but it was plain he had never seen or heard of it.
|
||
|
Indeed, he bore some grudge against the family and friends of
|
||
|
Ardshiel, and before he was drunk he read me a lampoon, in very
|
||
|
good Latin, but with a very ill meaning, which he had made in
|
||
|
elegiac verses upon a person of that house.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I told him of my catechist, he shook his head, and
|
||
|
said I was lucky to have got clear off. "That is a very
|
||
|
dangerous man," he said; "Duncan Mackiegh is his name; he can
|
||
|
shoot by the ear at several yards, and has been often accused of
|
||
|
highway robberies, and once of murder."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The cream of it is," says I, "that he called himself a
|
||
|
catechist."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And why should he not?" says he, "when that is what he is.
|
||
|
It was Maclean of Duart gave it to him because he was blind. But
|
||
|
perhaps it was a peety," says my host, "for he is always on the
|
||
|
road, going from one place to another to hear the young folk say
|
||
|
their religion; and, doubtless, that is a great temptation to
|
||
|
the poor man."
|
||
|
|
||
|
At last, when my landlord could drink no more, he showed me
|
||
|
to a bed, and I lay down in very good spirits; having travelled
|
||
|
the greater part of that big and crooked Island of Mull, from
|
||
|
Earraid to Torosay, fifty miles as the crow flies, and (with my
|
||
|
wanderings) much nearer a hundred, in four days and with little
|
||
|
fatigue. Indeed I was by far in better heart and health of body
|
||
|
at the end of that long tramp than I had been at the beginning.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XVI
|
||
|
THE LAD WITH THE SILVER BUTTON: ACROSS MORVEN
|
||
|
|
||
|
THERE is a regular ferry from Torosay to Kinlochaline on the
|
||
|
mainland. Both shores of the Sound are in the country of the
|
||
|
strong clan of the Macleans, and the people that passed the
|
||
|
ferry with me were almost all of that clan. The skipper of the
|
||
|
boat, on the other hand, was called Neil Roy Macrob; and since
|
||
|
Macrob was one of the names of Alan's clansmen, and Alan himself
|
||
|
had sent me to that ferry, I was eager to come to private speech
|
||
|
of Neil Roy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In the crowded boat this was of course impossible, and the
|
||
|
passage was a very slow affair. There was no wind, and as the
|
||
|
boat was wretchedly equipped, we could pull but two oars on one
|
||
|
side, and one on the other. The men gave way, however, with a
|
||
|
good will, the passengers taking spells to help them, and the
|
||
|
whole company giving the time in Gaelic boat-songs. And what
|
||
|
with the songs, and the sea-air, and the good-nature and spirit
|
||
|
of all concerned, and the bright weather, the passage was a
|
||
|
pretty thing to have seen.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But there was one melancholy part. In the mouth of Loch
|
||
|
Aline we found a great sea-going ship at anchor; and this I
|
||
|
supposed at first to be one of the King's cruisers which were
|
||
|
kept along that coast, both summer and winter, to prevent
|
||
|
communication with the French. As we got a little nearer, it
|
||
|
became plain she was a ship of merchandise; and what still more
|
||
|
puzzled me, not only her decks, but the sea-beach also, were
|
||
|
quite black with people, and skiffs were continually plying to
|
||
|
and fro between them. Yet nearer, and there began to come to our
|
||
|
ears a great sound of mourning, the people on board and those on
|
||
|
the shore crying and lamenting one to another so as to pierce
|
||
|
the heart.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then I understood this was an emigrant ship bound for the
|
||
|
American colonies.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We put the ferry-boat alongside, and the exiles leaned over
|
||
|
the bulwarks, weeping and reaching out their hands to my
|
||
|
fellow-passengers, among whom they counted some near friends.
|
||
|
How long this might have gone on I do not know, for they seemed
|
||
|
to have no sense of time: but at last the captain of the ship,
|
||
|
who seemed near beside himself (and no great wonder) in the
|
||
|
midst of this crying and confusion, came to the side and begged
|
||
|
us to depart.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thereupon Neil sheered off; and the chief singer in our
|
||
|
boat struck into a melancholy air, which was presently taken up
|
||
|
both by the emigrants and their friends upon the beach, so that
|
||
|
it sounded from all sides like a lament for the dying. I saw the
|
||
|
tears run down the cheeks of the men and women in the boat, even
|
||
|
as they bent at the oars; and the circumstances and the music of
|
||
|
the song (which is one called "Lochaber no more") were highly
|
||
|
affecting even to myself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At Kinlochaline I got Neil Roy upon one side on the beach,
|
||
|
and said I made sure he was one of Appin's men.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And what for no?" said he.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am seeking somebody," said I; "and it comes in my mind
|
||
|
that you will have news of him. Alan Breck Stewart is his name."
|
||
|
And very foolishly, instead of showing him the button, I sought
|
||
|
to pass a shilling in his hand.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At this he drew back. "I am very much affronted," he said;
|
||
|
"and this is not the way that one shentleman should behave to
|
||
|
another at all. The man you ask for is in France; but if he was
|
||
|
in my sporran," says he, "and your belly full of shillings, I
|
||
|
would not hurt a hair upon his body."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I saw I had gone the wrong way to work, and without wasting
|
||
|
time upon apologies, showed him the button lying in the hollow
|
||
|
of my palm.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Aweel, aweel," said Neil; "and I think ye might have begun
|
||
|
with that end of the stick, whatever! But if ye are the lad with
|
||
|
the silver button, all is well, and I have the word to see that
|
||
|
ye come safe. But if ye will pardon me to speak plainly," says
|
||
|
he, "there is a name that you should never take into your mouth,
|
||
|
and that is the name of Alan Breck; and there is a thing that ye
|
||
|
would never do, and that is to offer your dirty money to a
|
||
|
Hieland shentleman."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was not very easy to apologise; for I could scarce tell
|
||
|
him (what was the truth) that I had never dreamed he would set
|
||
|
up to be a gentleman until he told me so. Neil on his part had
|
||
|
no wish to prolong his dealings with me, only to fulfil his
|
||
|
orders and be done with it; and he made haste to give me my
|
||
|
route. This was to lie the night in Kinlochaline in the public
|
||
|
inn; to cross Morven the next day to Ardgour, and lie the night
|
||
|
in the house of one John of the Claymore, who was warned that I
|
||
|
might come; the third day, to be set across one loch at Corran
|
||
|
and another at Balachulish, and then ask my way to the house of
|
||
|
James of the Glens, at Aucharn in Duror of Appin. There was a
|
||
|
good deal of ferrying, as you hear; the sea in all this part
|
||
|
running deep into the mountains and winding about their roots.
|
||
|
It makes the country strong to hold and difficult to travel, but
|
||
|
full of prodigious wild and dreadful prospects.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had some other advice from Neil: to speak with no one by
|
||
|
the way, to avoid Whigs, Campbells, and the "red-soldiers;" to
|
||
|
leave the road and lie in a bush if I saw any of the latter
|
||
|
coming, "for it was never chancy to meet in with them;" and in
|
||
|
brief, to conduct myself like a robber or a Jacobite agent, as
|
||
|
perhaps Neil thought me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The inn at Kinlochaline was the most beggarly vile place
|
||
|
that ever pigs were styed in, full of smoke, vermin, and silent
|
||
|
Highlanders. I was not only discontented with my lodging, but
|
||
|
with myself for my mismanagement of Neil, and thought I could
|
||
|
hardly be worse off. But very wrongly, as I was soon to see; for
|
||
|
I had not been half an hour at the inn (standing in the door
|
||
|
most of the time, to ease my eyes from the peat smoke) when a
|
||
|
thunderstorm came close by, the springs broke in a little hill
|
||
|
on which the inn stood, and one end of the house became a
|
||
|
running water. Places of public entertainment were bad enough
|
||
|
all over Scotland in those days; yet it was a wonder to myself,
|
||
|
when I had to go from the fireside to the bed in which I slept,
|
||
|
wading over the shoes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Early in my next day's journey I overtook a little, stout,
|
||
|
solemn man, walking very slowly with his toes turned out,
|
||
|
sometimes reading in a book and sometimes marking the place with
|
||
|
his finger, and dressed decently and plainly in something of a
|
||
|
clerical style.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This I found to be another catechist, but of a different
|
||
|
order from the blind man of Mull: being indeed one of those sent
|
||
|
out by the Edinburgh Society for Propagating Christian
|
||
|
Knowledge, to evangelise the more savage places of the
|
||
|
Highlands. His name was Henderland; he spoke with the broad
|
||
|
south-country tongue, which I was beginning to weary for the
|
||
|
sound of; and besides common countryship, we soon found we had
|
||
|
a more particular bond of interest. For my good friend, the
|
||
|
minister of Essendean, had translated into the Gaelic in his
|
||
|
by-time a number of hymns and pious books which Henderland used
|
||
|
in his work, and held in great esteem. Indeed, it was one of
|
||
|
these he was carrying and reading when we met.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We fell in company at once, our ways lying together as far
|
||
|
as to Kingairloch. As we went, he stopped and spoke with all the
|
||
|
wayfarers and workers that we met or passed; and though of
|
||
|
course I could not tell what they discoursed about, yet I judged
|
||
|
Mr. Henderland must be well liked in the countryside, for I
|
||
|
observed many of them to bring out their mulls and share a pinch
|
||
|
of snuff with him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I told him as far in my affairs as I judged wise; as far,
|
||
|
that is, as they were none of Alan's; and gave Balachulish as
|
||
|
the place I was travelling to, to meet a friend; for I thought
|
||
|
Aucharn, or even Duror, would be too particular, and might put
|
||
|
him on the scent.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On his part, he told me much of his work and the people he
|
||
|
worked among, the hiding priests and Jacobites, the Disarming
|
||
|
Act, the dress, and many other curiosities of the time and
|
||
|
place. He seemed moderate; blaming Parliament in several points,
|
||
|
and especially because they had framed the Act more severely
|
||
|
against those who wore the dress than against those who carried
|
||
|
weapons.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This moderation put it in my mind to question him of the
|
||
|
Red Fox and the Appin tenants; questions which, I thought, would
|
||
|
seem natural enough in the mouth of one travelling to that
|
||
|
country.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He said it was a bad business. "It's wonderful," said he,
|
||
|
"where the tenants find the money, for their life is mere
|
||
|
starvation. (Ye don't carry such a thing as snuff, do ye, Mr.
|
||
|
Balfour? No. Well, I'm better wanting it.) But these tenants (as
|
||
|
I was saying) are doubtless partly driven to it. James Stewart
|
||
|
in Duror (that's him they call James of the Glens) is
|
||
|
half-brother to Ardshiel, the captain of the clan; and he is a
|
||
|
man much looked up to, and drives very hard. And then there's
|
||
|
one they call Alan Breck"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah!" I cried, "what of him?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What of the wind that bloweth where it listeth?" said
|
||
|
Henderland. "He's here and awa; here to-day and gone to-morrow:
|
||
|
a fair heather-cat. He might be glowering at the two of us out
|
||
|
of yon whin-bush, and I wouldnae wonder! Ye'll no carry such a
|
||
|
thing as snuff, will ye?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I told him no, and that he had asked the same thing more
|
||
|
than once.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's highly possible," said he, sighing. "But it seems
|
||
|
strange ye shouldnae carry it. However, as I was saying, this
|
||
|
Alan Breck is a bold, desperate customer, and well kent to be
|
||
|
James's right hand. His life is forfeit already; he would boggle
|
||
|
at naething; and maybe, if a tenant-body was to hang back he
|
||
|
would get a dirk in his wame."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You make a poor story of it all, Mr. Henderland," said I.
|
||
|
"If it is all fear upon both sides, I care to hear no more of
|
||
|
it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Na," said Mr. Henderland, "but there's love too, and
|
||
|
self-denial that should put the like of you and me to shame.
|
||
|
There's something fine about it; no perhaps Christian, but
|
||
|
humanly fine. Even Alan Breck, by all that I hear, is a chield
|
||
|
to be respected. There's many a lying sneck-draw sits close in
|
||
|
kirk in our own part of the country, and stands well in the
|
||
|
world's eye, and maybe is a far worse man, Mr. Balfour, than yon
|
||
|
misguided shedder of man's blood. Ay, ay, we might take a lesson
|
||
|
by them. -- Ye'll perhaps think I've been too long in the
|
||
|
Hielands?" he added, smiling to me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I told him not at all; that I had seen much to admire among
|
||
|
the Highlanders; and if he came to that, Mr. Campbell himself
|
||
|
was a Highlander.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay," said he, "that's true. It's a fine blood."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And what is the King's agent about?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Colin Campbell?" says Henderland. "Putting his head in a
|
||
|
bees' byke!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He is to turn the tenants out by force, I hear?" said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes," says he, "but the business has gone back and forth,
|
||
|
as folk say. First, James of the Glens rode to Edinburgh, and
|
||
|
got some lawyer (a Stewart, nae doubt -- they all hing together
|
||
|
like bats in a steeple) and had the proceedings stayed. And then
|
||
|
Colin Campbell cam' in again, and had the upper-hand before the
|
||
|
Barons of Exchequer. And now they tell me the first of the
|
||
|
tenants are to flit to-morrow. It's to begin at Duror under
|
||
|
James's very windows, which doesnae seem wise by my humble way
|
||
|
of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you think they'll fight?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," says Henderland, "they're disarmed -- or supposed
|
||
|
to be -- for there's still a good deal of cold iron lying by in
|
||
|
quiet places. And then Colin Campbell has the sogers coming. But
|
||
|
for all that, if I was his lady wife, I wouldnae be well pleased
|
||
|
till I got him home again. They're queer customers, the Appin
|
||
|
Stewarts."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I asked if they were worse than their neighbours.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No they," said he. "And that's the worst part of it. For
|
||
|
if Colin Roy can get his business done in Appin, he has it all
|
||
|
to begin again in the next country, which they call Mamore, and
|
||
|
which is one of the countries of the Camerons. He's King's
|
||
|
Factor upon both, and from both he has to drive out the tenants;
|
||
|
and indeed, Mr. Balfour (to be open with ye), it's my belief
|
||
|
that if he escapes the one lot, he'll get his death by the
|
||
|
other."
|
||
|
|
||
|
So we continued talking and walking the great part of the,
|
||
|
day; until at last, Mr. Henderland after expressing his delight
|
||
|
in my company, and satisfaction at meeting with a friend of Mr.
|
||
|
Campbell's ("whom," says he, "I will make bold to call that
|
||
|
sweet singer of our covenanted Zion"), proposed that I should
|
||
|
make a short stage, and lie the night in his house a little
|
||
|
beyond Kingairloch. To say truth, I was overjoyed; for I had no
|
||
|
great desire for John of the Claymore, and since my double
|
||
|
misadventure, first with the guide and next with the gentleman
|
||
|
skipper, I stood in some fear of any Highland stranger.
|
||
|
Accordingly we shook hands upon the bargain, and came in the
|
||
|
afternoon to a small house, standing alone by the shore of the
|
||
|
Linnhe Loch. The sun was already gone from the desert mountains
|
||
|
of Ardgour upon the hither side, but shone on those of Appin on
|
||
|
the farther; the loch lay as still as a lake, only the gulls
|
||
|
were crying round the sides of it; and the whole place seemed
|
||
|
solemn and uncouth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had no sooner come to the door of Mr. Henderland's
|
||
|
dwelling, than to my great surprise (for I was now used to the
|
||
|
politeness of Highlanders) he burst rudely past me, dashed into
|
||
|
the room, caught up a jar and a small horn-spoon, and began
|
||
|
ladling snuff into his nose in most excessive quantities. Then
|
||
|
he had a hearty fit of sneezing, and looked round upon me with
|
||
|
a rather silly smile.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's a vow I took," says he. "I took a vow upon me that I
|
||
|
wouldnae carry it. Doubtless it's a great privation; but when I
|
||
|
think upon the martyrs, not only to the Scottish Covenant but to
|
||
|
other points of Christianity, I think shame to mind it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As soon as we had eaten (and porridge and whey was the best
|
||
|
of the good man's diet) he took a grave face and said he had a
|
||
|
duty to perform by Mr. Campbell, and that was to inquire into my
|
||
|
state of mind towards God. I was inclined to smile at him since
|
||
|
the business of the snuff; but he had not spoken long before he
|
||
|
brought the tears into my eyes. There are two things that men
|
||
|
should never weary of, goodness and humility; we get none too
|
||
|
much of them in this rough world among cold, proud people; but
|
||
|
Mr. Henderland had their very speech upon his tongue. And though
|
||
|
I was a good deal puffed up with my adventures and with having
|
||
|
come off, as the saying is, with flying colours; yet he soon had
|
||
|
me on my knees beside a simple, poor old man, and both proud and
|
||
|
glad to be there.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Before we went to bed he offered me sixpence to help me on
|
||
|
my way, out of a scanty store he kept in the turf wall of his
|
||
|
house; at which excess of goodness I knew not what to do. But at
|
||
|
last he was so earnest with me that I thought it the more
|
||
|
mannerly part to let him have his way, and so left him poorer
|
||
|
than myself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XVII
|
||
|
THE DEATH OF THE RED FOX
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE next day Mr. Henderland found for me a man who had a boat of
|
||
|
his own and was to cross the Linnhe Loch that afternoon into
|
||
|
Appin, fishing. Him he prevailed on to take me, for he was one
|
||
|
of his flock; and in this way I saved a long day's travel and
|
||
|
the price of the two public ferries I must otherwise have
|
||
|
passed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was near noon before we set out; a dark day with clouds,
|
||
|
and the sun shining upon little patches. The sea was here very
|
||
|
deep and still, and had scarce a wave upon it; so that I must
|
||
|
put the water to my lips before I could believe it to be truly
|
||
|
salt. The mountains on either side were high, rough and barren,
|
||
|
very black and gloomy in the shadow of the clouds, but all
|
||
|
silver-laced with little watercourses where the sun shone upon
|
||
|
them. It seemed a hard country, this of Appin, for people to
|
||
|
care as much about as Alan did.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was but one thing to mention. A little after we had
|
||
|
started, the sun shone upon a little moving clump of scarlet
|
||
|
close in along the water-side to the north. It was much of the
|
||
|
same red as soldiers' coats; every now and then, too, there came
|
||
|
little sparks and lightnings, as though the sun had struck upon
|
||
|
bright steel.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I asked my boatman what it should be, and he answered he
|
||
|
supposed it was some of the red soldiers coming from Fort
|
||
|
William into Appin, against the poor tenantry of the country.
|
||
|
Well, it was a sad sight to me; and whether it was because of my
|
||
|
thoughts of Alan, or from something prophetic in my bosom,
|
||
|
although this was but the second time I had seen King George's
|
||
|
troops, I had no good will to them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At last we came so near the point of land at the entering
|
||
|
in of Loch Leven that I begged to be set on shore. My boatman
|
||
|
(who was an honest fellow and mindful of his promise to the
|
||
|
catechist) would fain have carried me on to Balachulish; but as
|
||
|
this was to take me farther from my secret destination, I
|
||
|
insisted, and was set on shore at last under the wood of
|
||
|
Lettermore (or Lettervore, for I have heard it both ways) in
|
||
|
Alan's country of Appin.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was a wood of birches, growing on a steep, craggy side
|
||
|
of a mountain that overhung the loch. It had many openings and
|
||
|
ferny howes; and a road or bridle track ran north and south
|
||
|
through the midst of it, by the edge of which, where was a
|
||
|
spring, I sat down to eat some oat-bread of Mr. Henderland's and
|
||
|
think upon my situation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here I was not only troubled by a cloud of stinging midges,
|
||
|
but far more by the doubts of my mind. What I ought to do, why
|
||
|
I was going to join myself with an outlaw and a would-be
|
||
|
murderer like Alan, whether I should not be acting more like a
|
||
|
man of sense to tramp back to the south country direct, by my
|
||
|
own guidance and at my own charges, and what Mr. Campbell or
|
||
|
even Mr. Henderland would think of me if they should ever learn
|
||
|
my folly and presumption: these were the doubts that now began
|
||
|
to come in on me stronger than ever.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As I Was so sitting and thinking, a sound of men and horses
|
||
|
came to me through the wood; and presently after, at a turning
|
||
|
of the road, I saw four travellers come into view. The way was
|
||
|
in this part so rough and narrow that they came single and led
|
||
|
their horses by the reins. The first was a great, red-headed
|
||
|
gentleman, of an imperious and flushed face, who carried his hat
|
||
|
in his hand and fanned himself, for he was in a breathing heat.
|
||
|
The second, by his decent black garb and white wig, I correctly
|
||
|
took to be a lawyer. The third was a servant, and wore some part
|
||
|
of his clothes in tartan, which showed that his master was of a
|
||
|
Highland family, and either an outlaw or else in singular good
|
||
|
odour with the Government, since the wearing of tartan was
|
||
|
against the Act. If I had been better versed in these things, I
|
||
|
would have known the tartan to be of the Argyle (or Campbell)
|
||
|
colours. This servant had a good-sized portmanteau strapped on
|
||
|
his horse, and a net of lemons (to brew punch with) hanging at
|
||
|
the saddle-bow; as was often enough the custom with luxurious
|
||
|
travellers in that part of the country.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As for the fourth, who brought up the tail, I had seen his
|
||
|
like before, and knew him at once to be a sheriff's officer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had no sooner seen these people coming than I made up my
|
||
|
mind (for no reason that I can tell) to go through with my
|
||
|
adventure; and when the first came alongside of me, I rose up
|
||
|
from the bracken and asked him the way to Aucharn.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He stopped and looked at me, as I thought, a little oddly;
|
||
|
and then, turning to the lawyer, "Mungo," said he, "there's many
|
||
|
a man would think this more of a warning than two pyats. Here am
|
||
|
I on my road to Duror on the job ye ken; and here is a young lad
|
||
|
starts up out of the bracken, and speers if I am on the way to
|
||
|
Aucharn."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Glenure," said the other, "this is an ill subject for
|
||
|
jesting."
|
||
|
|
||
|
These two had now drawn close up and were gazing at me,
|
||
|
while the two followers had halted about a stone-cast in the
|
||
|
rear.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And what seek ye in Aucharn?" said Colin Roy Campbell of
|
||
|
Glenure, him they called the Red Fox; for he it was that I had
|
||
|
stopped.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The man that lives there," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"James of the Glens," says Glenure, musingly; and then to
|
||
|
the lawyer: "Is he gathering his people, think ye?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Anyway," says the lawyer, "we shall do better to bide
|
||
|
where we are, and let the soldiers rally us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If you are concerned for me," said I, "I am neither of his
|
||
|
people nor yours, but an honest subject of King George, owing no
|
||
|
man and fearing no man."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, very well said," replies the Factor. "But if I may
|
||
|
make so bold as ask, what does this honest man so far from his
|
||
|
country? and why does he come seeking the brother of Ardshiel?
|
||
|
I have power here, I must tell you. I am King's Factor upon
|
||
|
several of these estates, and have twelve files of soldiers at
|
||
|
my back."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have heard a waif word in the country," said I, a little
|
||
|
nettled, "that you were a hard man to drive."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He still kept looking at me, as if in doubt.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," said he, at last, "your tongue is bold; but I am no
|
||
|
unfriend to plainness. If ye had asked me the way to the door of
|
||
|
James Stewart on any other day but this, I would have set ye
|
||
|
right and bidden ye God speed. But to-day -- eh, Mungo?" And he
|
||
|
turned again to look at the lawyer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But just as he turned there came the shot of a firelock
|
||
|
from higher up the hill; and with the very sound of it Glenure
|
||
|
fell upon the road.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"O, I am dead!" he cried, several times over.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The lawyer had caught him up and held him in his arms, the
|
||
|
servant standing over and clasping his hands. And now the
|
||
|
wounded man looked from one to another with scared eyes, and
|
||
|
there was a change in his voice, that went to the heart.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Take care of yourselves," says he. "I am dead."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He tried to open his clothes as if to look for the wound,
|
||
|
but his fingers slipped on the buttons. With that he gave a
|
||
|
great sigh, his head rolled on his shoulder, and he passed away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The lawyer said never a word, but his face was as sharp as
|
||
|
a pen and as white as the dead man's; the servant broke out into
|
||
|
a great noise of crying and weeping, like a child; and I, on my
|
||
|
side, stood staring at them in a kind of horror. The sheriff's
|
||
|
officer had run back at the first sound of the shot, to hasten
|
||
|
the coming of the soldiers.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At last the lawyer laid down the dead man in his blood upon
|
||
|
the road, and got to his own feet with a kind of stagger.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I believe it was his movement that brought me to my senses;
|
||
|
for he had no sooner done so than I began to scramble up the
|
||
|
hill, crying out, "The murderer! the murderer!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
So little a time had elapsed, that when I got to the top of
|
||
|
the first steepness, and could see some part of the open
|
||
|
mountain, the murderer was still moving away at no great
|
||
|
distance. He was a big man, in a black coat, with metal buttons,
|
||
|
and carried a long fowling-piece.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Here!" I cried. "I see him!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
At that the murderer gave a little, quick look over his
|
||
|
shoulder, and began to run. The next moment he was lost in a
|
||
|
fringe of birches; then he came out again on the upper side,
|
||
|
where I could see him climbing like a jackanapes, for that part
|
||
|
was again very steep; and then he dipped behind a shoulder, and
|
||
|
I saw him no more.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All this time I had been running on my side, and had got a
|
||
|
good way up, when a voice cried upon me to stand.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was at the edge of the upper wood, and so now, when I
|
||
|
halted and looked back, I saw all the open part of the hill
|
||
|
below me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The lawyer and the sheriff's officer were standing just
|
||
|
above the road, crying and waving on me to come back; and on
|
||
|
their left, the red-coats, musket in hand, were beginning to
|
||
|
struggle singly out of the lower wood.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why should I come back?" I cried. "Come you on!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ten pounds if ye take that lad!" cried the lawyer. "He's
|
||
|
an acomplice. He was posted here to hold us in talk."
|
||
|
|
||
|
At that word (which I could hear quite plainly, though it
|
||
|
was to the soldiers and not to me that he was crying it) my
|
||
|
heart came in my mouth with quite a new kind of terror. Indeed,
|
||
|
it is one thing to stand the danger of your life, and quite
|
||
|
another to run the peril of both life and character. The thing,
|
||
|
besides, had come so suddenly, like thunder out of a clear sky,
|
||
|
that I was all amazed and helpless.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The soldiers began to spread, some of them to run, and
|
||
|
others to put up their pieces and cover me; and still I stood.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Jouk[1] in here among the trees," said a voice close by.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Indeed, I scarce knew what I was doing, but I obeyed; and
|
||
|
as I did so, I heard the firelocks bang and the balls whistle in
|
||
|
the birches.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Just inside the shelter of the trees I found Alan Breck
|
||
|
standing, with a fishing-rod. He gave me no salutation; indeed
|
||
|
it was no time for civilities; only "Come!" says he, and set off
|
||
|
running along the side of the mountain towards Balaehulish; and
|
||
|
I, like a sheep, to follow him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now we ran among the birches; now stooping behind low humps
|
||
|
upon the mountain-side; now crawling on all fours among the
|
||
|
heather. The pace was deadly: my heart seemed bursting against
|
||
|
my ribs; and I had neither time to think nor breath to speak
|
||
|
with. Only I remember seeing with wonder, that Alan every now
|
||
|
and then would straighten himself to his full height and look
|
||
|
back; and every time he did so, there came a great far-away
|
||
|
cheering and crying of the soldiers.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Quarter of an hour later, Alan stopped, clapped down flat
|
||
|
in the heather, and turned to me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now," said he, "it's earnest. Do as I do, for your life."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And at the same speed, but now with infinitely more
|
||
|
precaution, we traced back again across the mountain-side by the
|
||
|
same way that we had come, only perhaps higher; till at last
|
||
|
Alan threw him-self down in the upper wood of Lettermore, where
|
||
|
I had found him at the first, and lay, with his face in the
|
||
|
bracken, panting like a dog.
|
||
|
|
||
|
My own sides so ached, my head so swam, my tongue so hung
|
||
|
out of my mouth with heat and dryness, that I lay beside him
|
||
|
like one dead.
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] Duck.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XVIII
|
||
|
I TALK WITH ALAN IN THE WOOD OF LETTERMORE
|
||
|
|
||
|
ALAN was the first to come round. He rose, went to the border of
|
||
|
the wood, peered out a little, and then returned and sat down.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," said he, "yon was a hot burst, David."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I said nothing, nor so much as lifted my face. I had seen
|
||
|
murder done, and a great, ruddy, jovial gentleman struck out of
|
||
|
life in a moment; the pity of that sight was still sore within
|
||
|
me, and yet that was but a part of my concern. Here was murder
|
||
|
done upon the man Alan hated; here was Alan skulking in the
|
||
|
trees and running from the troops; and whether his was the hand
|
||
|
that fired or only the head that ordered, signified but little.
|
||
|
By my way of it, my only friend in that wild country was
|
||
|
blood-guilty in the first degree; I held him in horror; I could
|
||
|
not look upon his face; I would have rather lain alone in the
|
||
|
rain on my cold isle, than in that warm wood beside a murderer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Are ye still wearied?" he asked again.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No," said I, still with my face in the bracken; "no, I am
|
||
|
not wearied now, and I can speak. You and me must twine,"[1] I
|
||
|
said. "I liked you very well, Alan, but your ways are not mine,
|
||
|
and they're not God's: and the short and the long of it is just
|
||
|
that we must twine."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I will hardly twine from ye, David, without some kind of
|
||
|
reason for the same," said Alan, mighty gravely. "If ye ken
|
||
|
anything against my reputation, it's the least thing that ye
|
||
|
should do, for old acquaintance' sake, to let me hear the name
|
||
|
of it; and if ye have only taken a distaste to my society, it
|
||
|
will be proper for me to judge if I'm insulted."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Alan," said I, "what is the sense of this? Ye ken very
|
||
|
well yon Campbell-man lies in his blood upon the road."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He was silent for a little; then says he, "Did ever ye hear
|
||
|
tell of the story of the Man and the Good People?" -- by which
|
||
|
he meant the fairies.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No," said I, "nor do I want to hear it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"With your permission, Mr. Balfour, I will tell it you,
|
||
|
whatever," says Alan. "The man, ye should ken, was cast upon a
|
||
|
rock in the sea, where it appears the Good People were in use to
|
||
|
come and rest as they went through to Ireland. The name of this
|
||
|
rock is called the Skerryvore, and it's not far from where we
|
||
|
suffered ship-wreck. Well, it seems the man cried so sore, if he
|
||
|
could just see his little bairn before he died! that at last the
|
||
|
king of the Good People took peety upon him, and sent one flying
|
||
|
that brought back the bairn in a poke[2] and laid it down beside
|
||
|
the man where he lay sleeping. So when the man woke, there was
|
||
|
a poke beside him and something into the inside of it that
|
||
|
moved. Well, it seems he was one of these gentry that think aye
|
||
|
the worst of things; and for greater seeurity, he stuck his dirk
|
||
|
throughout that poke before he opened it, and there was his
|
||
|
bairn dead. I am thinking to myself, Mr. Balfour, that you and
|
||
|
the man are very much alike."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you mean you had no hand in it?" cried I, sitting up.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I will tell you first of all, Mr. Balfour of Shaws, as one
|
||
|
friend to another," said Alan, "that if I were going to kill a
|
||
|
gentleman, it would not be in my own country, to bring trouble
|
||
|
on my clan; and I would not go wanting sword and gun, and with
|
||
|
a long fishing-rod upon my back."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," said I, "that's true!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And now," continued Alan, taking out his dirk and laying
|
||
|
his hand upon it in a certain manner, "I swear upon the Holy
|
||
|
Iron I had neither art nor part, act nor thought in it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I thank God for that!" cried I, and offered him my hand.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He did not appear to see it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And here is a great deal of work about a Campbell!" said
|
||
|
he. "They are not so scarce, that I ken!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"At least," said I, "you cannot justly blame me, for you
|
||
|
know very well what you told me in the brig. But the temptation
|
||
|
and the act are different, I thank God again for that. We may
|
||
|
all be tempted; but to take a life in cold blood, Alan!" And I
|
||
|
could say no more for the moment." And do you know who did it?"
|
||
|
I added. "Do you know that man in the black coat?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have nae clear mind about his coat," said Alan
|
||
|
Cunningly." but it sticks in my head that it was blue."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Blue or black, did ye know him?" said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I couldnae just conscientiously swear to him," says Alan.
|
||
|
"He gaed very close by me, to be sure, but it's a strange thing
|
||
|
that I should just have been tying my brogues."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Can you swear that you don't know him, Alan?" I cried,
|
||
|
half angered, half in a mind to laugh at his evasions.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not yet," says he; "but I've a grand memory for
|
||
|
forgetting, David."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And yet there was one thing I saw clearly," said I; "and
|
||
|
that was, that you exposed yourself and me to draw the
|
||
|
soldiers."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's very likely," said Alan; "and so would any gentleman.
|
||
|
You and me were innocent of that transaction."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The better reason, since we were falsely suspected, that
|
||
|
we should get clear," I cried. "The innocent should surely come
|
||
|
before the guilty."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, David," said he, "the innocent have aye a chance to
|
||
|
get assoiled in court; but for the lad that shot the bullet, I
|
||
|
think the best place for him will be the heather. Them that
|
||
|
havenae dipped their hands in any little difficulty, should be
|
||
|
very mindful of the case of them that have. And that is the good
|
||
|
Christianity. For if it was the other way round about, and the
|
||
|
lad whom I couldnae just clearly see had been in our shoes, and
|
||
|
we in his (as might very well have been), I think we would be a
|
||
|
good deal obliged to him oursel's if he would draw the
|
||
|
soldiers."
|
||
|
|
||
|
When it came to this, I gave Alan up. But he looked so
|
||
|
innocent all the time, and was in such clear good faith in what
|
||
|
he said, and so ready to sacrifice himself for what he deemed
|
||
|
his duty, that my mouth was closed. Mr. Henderland's words came
|
||
|
back to me: that we ourselves might take a lesson by these wild
|
||
|
Highlanders. Well, here I had taken mine. Alan's morals were all
|
||
|
tail-first; but he was ready to give his life for them, such as
|
||
|
they were.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Alan," said I, "I'll not say it's the good Christianity as
|
||
|
I understand it, but it's good enough. And here I offer ye my
|
||
|
hand for the second time."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Whereupon he gave me both of his, saying surely I had cast
|
||
|
a spell upon him, for he could forgive me anything. Then he grew
|
||
|
very grave, and said we had not much time to throw away, but
|
||
|
must both flee that country: he, because he was a deserter, and
|
||
|
the whole of Appin would now be searched like a chamber, and
|
||
|
every one obliged to give a good account of himself; and I,
|
||
|
because I was certainly involved in the murder.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"O!" says I, willing to give him a little lesson, "I have
|
||
|
no fear of the justice of my country."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As if this was your country!" said he. "Or as if ye would
|
||
|
be tried here, in a country of Stewarts!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's all Scotland," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Man, I whiles wonder at ye," said Alan. "This is a
|
||
|
Campbell that's been killed. Well, it'll be tried in Inverara,
|
||
|
the Campbells' head place; with fifteen Campbells in the
|
||
|
jury-box and the biggest Campbell of all (and that's the Duke)
|
||
|
sitting cocking on the bench. Justice, David? The same justice,
|
||
|
by all the world, as Glenure found awhile ago at the roadside."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This frightened me a little, I confess, and would have
|
||
|
frightened me more if I had known how nearly exact were Alan's
|
||
|
predictions; indeed it was but in one point that he exaggerated,
|
||
|
there being but eleven Campbells on the jury; though as the
|
||
|
other four were equally in the Duke's dependence, it mattered
|
||
|
less than might appear. Still, I cried out that he was unjust to
|
||
|
the Duke of Argyle, who (for all he was a Whig) was yet a wise
|
||
|
and honest nobleman.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hoot!" said Alan, "the man's a Whig, nae doubt; but I
|
||
|
would never deny he was a good chieftain to his clan. And what
|
||
|
would the clan think if there was a Campbell shot, and naebody
|
||
|
hanged, and their own chief the Justice General? But I have
|
||
|
often observed," says Alan, "that you Low-country bodies have no
|
||
|
clear idea of what's right and wrong."
|
||
|
|
||
|
At this I did at last laugh out aloud, when to my surprise,
|
||
|
Alan joined in, and laughed as merrily as myself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Na, na," said he, "we're in the Hielands, David; and when
|
||
|
I tell ye to run, take my word and run. Nae doubt it's a hard
|
||
|
thing to skulk and starve in the Heather, but it's harder yet to
|
||
|
lie shackled in a red-coat prison."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I asked him whither we should flee; and as he told me "to
|
||
|
the Lowlands," I was a little better inclined to go with him;
|
||
|
for, indeed, I was growing impatient to get baek and have the
|
||
|
upper-hand of my uncle. Besides, Alan made so sure there would
|
||
|
be no question of justice in the matter, that I began to be
|
||
|
afraid he might be right. Of all deaths, I would truly like
|
||
|
least to die by the gallows; and the picture of that uncanny
|
||
|
instrument came into my head with extraordinary clearness (as I
|
||
|
had once seen it engraved at the top of a pedlar's ballad) and
|
||
|
took away my appetite for courts of justice.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I'll chance it, Alan," said I. "I'll go with you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But mind you," said Alan, "it's no small thing. Ye maun
|
||
|
lie bare and hard, and brook many an empty belly. Your bed shall
|
||
|
be the moorcock's, and your life shall be like the hunted
|
||
|
deer's, and ye shall sleep with your hand upon your weapons. Ay,
|
||
|
man, ye shall taigle many a weary foot, or we get clear! I tell
|
||
|
ye this at the start, for it's a life that I ken well. But if ye
|
||
|
ask what other chance ye have, I answer: Nane. Either take to
|
||
|
the heather with me, or else hang."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And that's a choice very easily made," said I; and we
|
||
|
shook hands upon it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And now let's take another keek at the red-coats," says
|
||
|
Alan, and he led me to the north-eastern fringe of the wood.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Looking out between the trees, we could see a great side of
|
||
|
mountain, running down exceeding steep into the waters of the
|
||
|
loch. It was a rough part, all hanging stone, and heather, and
|
||
|
big scrogs of birchwood; and away at the far end towards
|
||
|
Balachulish, little wee red soldiers were dipping up and down
|
||
|
over hill and howe, and growing smaller every minute. There was
|
||
|
no cheering now, for I think they had other uses for what breath
|
||
|
was left them; but they still stuck to the trail, and doubtless
|
||
|
thought that we were close in front of them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Alan watched them, smiling to himself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay," said he, "they'll be gey weary before they've got to
|
||
|
the end of that employ! And so you and me, David, can sit down
|
||
|
and eat a bite, and breathe a bit longer, and take a dram from
|
||
|
my bottle. Then we'll strike for Aucharn, the house of my
|
||
|
kinsman, James of the Glens, where I must get my clothes, and my
|
||
|
arms, and money to carry us along; and then, David, we'll cry,
|
||
|
'Forth, Fortune!' and take a cast among the heather."
|
||
|
|
||
|
So we sat again and ate and drank, in a place whence we
|
||
|
could see the sun going down into a field of great, wild, and
|
||
|
houseless mountains, such as I was now condemned to wander in
|
||
|
with my companion. Partly as we so sat, and partly afterwards,
|
||
|
on the way to Aucharn, each of us narrated his adventures; and
|
||
|
I shall here set down so much of Alan's as seems either curious
|
||
|
or needful.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It appears he ran to the bulwarks as soon as the wave was
|
||
|
passed; saw me, and lost me, and saw me again, as I tumbled in
|
||
|
the roost; and at last had one glimpse of me clinging on the
|
||
|
yard. It was this that put him in some hope I would maybe get to
|
||
|
land after all, and made him leave those clues and messages
|
||
|
which had brought me (for my sins) to that unlucky country of
|
||
|
Appin.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In the meanwhile, those still on the brig had got the skiff
|
||
|
launched, and one or two were on board of her already, when
|
||
|
there came a second wave greater than the first, and heaved the
|
||
|
brig out of her place, and would certainly have sent her to the
|
||
|
bottom, had she not struck and caught on some projection of the
|
||
|
reef. When she had struck first, it had been bows-on, so that
|
||
|
the stern had hitherto been lowest. But now her stern was thrown
|
||
|
in the air, and the bows plunged under the sea; and with that,
|
||
|
the water began to pour into the fore-scuttle like the pouring
|
||
|
of a mill-dam.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It took the colour out of Alan's face, even to tell what
|
||
|
followed. For there were still two men lying impotent in their
|
||
|
bunks; and these, seeing the water pour in and thinking the ship
|
||
|
had foundered, began to cry out aloud, and that with such
|
||
|
harrowing cries that all who were on deck tumbled one after
|
||
|
another into the skiff and fell to their oars. They were not two
|
||
|
hundred yards away, when there came a third great sea; and at
|
||
|
that the brig lifted clean over the reef; her canvas filled for
|
||
|
a moment, and she seemed to sail in chase of them, but settling
|
||
|
all the while; and presently she drew down and down, as if a
|
||
|
hand was drawing her; and the sea closed over the Covenant of
|
||
|
Dysart.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Never a word they spoke as they pulled ashore. being
|
||
|
stunned with the horror of that screaming; but they had scarce
|
||
|
set foot upon the beach when Hoseason woke up, as if out of a
|
||
|
muse, and bade them lay hands upon Alan. They hung back indeed,
|
||
|
having little taste for the employment; but Hoseason was like a
|
||
|
fiend, crying that Alan was alone, that he had a great sum about
|
||
|
him, that he had been the means of losing the brig and drowning
|
||
|
all their comrades, and that here was both revenge and wealth
|
||
|
upon a single cast. It was seven against one; in that part of
|
||
|
the shore there was no rock that Alan could set his back to; and
|
||
|
the sailors began to spread out and come behind him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And then," said Alan, "the little man with the red head --
|
||
|
I havenae mind of the name that he is called."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Riach," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay" said Alan," Riach! Well, it was him that took up the
|
||
|
clubs for me, asked the men if they werenae feared of a
|
||
|
judgment, and, says he 'Dod, I'll put my back to the
|
||
|
Hielandman's mysel'.' That's none such an entirely bad little
|
||
|
man, yon little man with the red head," said Alan "He has some
|
||
|
spunks of decency."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," said I, "he was kind to me in his way."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And so he was to Alan," said he; "and by my troth, I found
|
||
|
his way a very good one! But ye see, David, the loss of the ship
|
||
|
and the cries of these poor lads sat very ill upon the man; and
|
||
|
I'm thinking that would be the cause of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, I would think so," says I; "for he was as keen as
|
||
|
any of the rest at the beginning. But how did Hoseason take it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It sticks in my mind that he would take it very ill," says
|
||
|
Alan. "But the little man cried to me to run, and indeed I
|
||
|
thought it was a good observe, and ran. The last that I saw they
|
||
|
were all in a knot upon the beach, like folk that were not
|
||
|
agreeing very well together."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do you mean by that?" said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, the fists were going," said Alan; "and I saw one man
|
||
|
go down like a pair of breeks. But I thought it would be better
|
||
|
no to wait. Ye see there's a strip of Campbells in that end of
|
||
|
Mull, which is no good company for a gentleman like me. If it
|
||
|
hadnae been for that I would have waited and looked for ye
|
||
|
mysel', let alone giving a hand to the little man." (It was
|
||
|
droll how Alan dwelt on Mr. Riach's stature, for, to say the
|
||
|
truth, the one was not much smaller than the other.) "So," says
|
||
|
he, continuing, "I set my best foot forward, and whenever I met
|
||
|
in with any one I cried out there was a wreck ashore. Man, they
|
||
|
didnae stop to fash with me! Ye should have seen them linking
|
||
|
for the beach! And when they got there they found they had had
|
||
|
the pleasure of a run, which is aye good for a Campbell. I'm
|
||
|
thinking it was a judgment on the clan that the brig went down
|
||
|
in the lump and didnae break. But it was a very unlucky thing
|
||
|
for you, that same; for if any wreck had come ashore they would
|
||
|
have hunted high and low, and would soon have found ye."
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] Part.
|
||
|
[2] Bag.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XIX
|
||
|
THE HOUSE OF FEAR
|
||
|
|
||
|
NIGHT fell as we were walking, and the clouds, which had broken
|
||
|
up in the afternoon, settled in and thickened, so that it fell,
|
||
|
for the season of the year, extremely dark. The way we went was
|
||
|
over rough mountainsides; and though Alan pushed on with an
|
||
|
assured manner, I could by no means see how he directed himself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At last, about half-past ten of the clock, we came to the
|
||
|
top of a brae, and saw lights below us. It seemed a house door
|
||
|
stood open and let out a beam of fire and candle-light; and all
|
||
|
round the house and steading five or six persons were moving
|
||
|
hurriedly about, each carrying a lighted brand.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"James must have tint his wits," said Alan. "If this was
|
||
|
the soldiers instead of you and me, he would be in a bonny mess.
|
||
|
But I dare say he'll have a sentry on the road, and he would ken
|
||
|
well enough no soldiers would find the way that we came."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Hereupon he whistled three times, in a particular manner.
|
||
|
It was strange to see how, at the first sound of it, all the
|
||
|
moving torches came to a stand, as if the bearers were
|
||
|
affrighted; and how, at the third, the bustle began again as
|
||
|
before.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Having thus set folks' minds at rest, we came down the
|
||
|
brae, and were met at the yard gate (for this place was like a
|
||
|
well-doing farm) by a tall, handsome man of more than fifty, who
|
||
|
cried out to Alan in the Gaelic.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"James Stewart," said Alan, "I will ask ye to speak in
|
||
|
Scotch, for here is a young gentleman with me that has nane of
|
||
|
the other. This is him," he added, putting his arm through mine,
|
||
|
"a young gentleman of the Lowlands, and a laird in his country
|
||
|
too, but I am thinking it will be the better for his health if
|
||
|
we give his name the go-by."
|
||
|
|
||
|
James of the Glens turned to me for a moment, and greeted
|
||
|
me courteously enough; the next he had turned to Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This has been a dreadful accident," he cried. "It will
|
||
|
bring trouble on the country." And he wrung his hands.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hoots!" said Alan, "ye must take the sour with the sweet,
|
||
|
man. Colin Roy is dead, and be thankful for that!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay" said James, "and by my troth, I wish he was alive
|
||
|
again! It's all very fine to blow and boast beforehand; but now
|
||
|
it's done, Alan; and who's to bear the wyte[1] of it? The
|
||
|
accident fell out in Appin -- mind ye that, Alan; it's Appin
|
||
|
that must pay; and I am a man that has a family."
|
||
|
|
||
|
While this was going on I looked about me at the servants.
|
||
|
Some were on ladders, digging in the thatch of the house or the
|
||
|
farm buildings, from which they brought out guns, swords, and
|
||
|
different weapons of war; others carried them away; and by the
|
||
|
sound of mattock blows from somewhere farther down the brae, I
|
||
|
suppose they buried them. Though they were all so busy, there
|
||
|
prevailed no kind of order in their efforts; men struggled
|
||
|
together for the same gun and ran into each other with their
|
||
|
burning torches; and James was continually turning about from
|
||
|
his talk with Alan, to cry out orders which were apparently
|
||
|
never understood. The faces in the torchlight were like those of
|
||
|
people overborne with hurry and panic; and though none spoke
|
||
|
above his breath, their speech sounded both anxious and angry.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was about this time that a lassie came out of the house
|
||
|
carrying a pack or bundle; and it has often made me smile to
|
||
|
think how Alan's instinct awoke at the mere sight of it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What's that the lassie has?" he asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We're just setting the house in order, Alan," said James,
|
||
|
in his frightened and somewhat fawning way. "They'll search
|
||
|
Appin with candles, and we must have all things straight. We're
|
||
|
digging the bit guns and swords into the moss, ye see; and
|
||
|
these, I am thinking, will be your ain French clothes. We'll be
|
||
|
to bury them, I believe."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Bury my French clothes!" cried Alan. "Troth, no!" And he
|
||
|
laid hold upon the packet and retired into the barn to shift
|
||
|
himself, recommending me in the meanwhile to his kinsman.
|
||
|
|
||
|
James carried me accordingly into the kitchen, and sat down
|
||
|
with me at table, smiling and talking at first in a very
|
||
|
hospitable manner. But presently the gloom returned upon him; he
|
||
|
sat frowning and biting his fingers; only remembered me from
|
||
|
time to time; and then gave me but a word or two and a poor
|
||
|
smile, and back into his private terrors. His wife sat by the
|
||
|
fire and wept, with her face in her hands; his eldest son was
|
||
|
crouched upon the floor, running over a great mass of papers and
|
||
|
now and again setting one alight and burning it to the bitter
|
||
|
end; all the while a servant lass with a red face was rummaging
|
||
|
about the room, in a blind hurry of fear, and whimpering as she
|
||
|
went; and every now and again one of the men would thrust in his
|
||
|
face from the yard, and cry for orders.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At last James could keep his seat no longer, and begged my
|
||
|
permission to be so unmannerly as walk about. "I am but poor
|
||
|
company altogether, sir," says he, "but I can think of nothing
|
||
|
but this dreadful accident, and the trouble it is like to bring
|
||
|
upon quite innocent persons."
|
||
|
|
||
|
A little after he observed his son burning a paper which he
|
||
|
thought should have been kept; and at that his excitement burst
|
||
|
out so that it was painful to witness. He struck the lad
|
||
|
repeatedly.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Are you gone gyte?"[2] he cried. "Do you wish to hang your
|
||
|
father?" and forgetful of my presence, carried on at him a long
|
||
|
time together in the Gaelic, the young man answering nothing;
|
||
|
only the wife, at the name of hanging, throwing her apron over
|
||
|
her face and sobbing out louder than before.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was all wretched for a stranger like myself to hear
|
||
|
and see; and I was right glad when Alan returned, looking like
|
||
|
himself in his fine French clothes, though (to be sure) they
|
||
|
were now grown almost too battered and withered to deserve the
|
||
|
name of fine. I was then taken out in my turn by another of the
|
||
|
sons, and given that change of clothing of which I had stood so
|
||
|
long in need, and a pair of Highland brogues made of
|
||
|
deer-leather, rather strange at first, but after a little
|
||
|
practice very easy to the feet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
By the time I came back Alan must have told his story; for
|
||
|
it seemed understood that I was to fly with him, and they were
|
||
|
all busy upon our equipment. They gave us each a sword and
|
||
|
pistols, though I professed my inability to use the former; and
|
||
|
with these, and some ammunition, a bag of oatmeal, an iron pan,
|
||
|
and a bottle of right French brandy, we were ready for the
|
||
|
heather. Money, indeed, was lacking. I had about two guineas
|
||
|
left; Alan's belt having been despatched by another hand, that
|
||
|
trusty messenger had no more than seventeen-pence to his whole
|
||
|
fortune; and as for James, it appears he had brought himself so
|
||
|
low with journeys to Edinburgh and legal expenses on behalf of
|
||
|
the tenants, that he could only scrape together
|
||
|
three-and-five-pence-halfpenny, the most of it in coppers.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This'll no do," said Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye must find a safe bit somewhere near by," said James,
|
||
|
"and get word sent to me. Ye see, ye'll have to get this
|
||
|
business prettily off, Alan. This is no time to be stayed for a
|
||
|
guinea or two. They're sure to get wind of ye, sure to seek ye,
|
||
|
and by my way of it, sure to lay on ye the wyte of this day's
|
||
|
accident. If it falls on you, it falls on me that am your near
|
||
|
kinsman and harboured ye while ye were in the country. And if it
|
||
|
comes on me----" he paused, and bit his fingers, with a white
|
||
|
face." It would be a painful thing for our friends if I was to
|
||
|
hang," said he.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It would be an ill day for Appin," says Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's a day that sticks in my throat," said James. "O man,
|
||
|
man, man--man Alan! you and me have spoken like two fools!" he
|
||
|
cried, striking his hand upon the wall so that the house rang
|
||
|
again.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, and that's true, too," said Alan; "and my friend
|
||
|
from the Lowlands here" (nodding at me) "gave me a good word
|
||
|
upon that head, if I would only have listened to him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But see here," said James, returning to his former manner,
|
||
|
"if they lay me by the heels, Alan, it's then that you'll be
|
||
|
needing the money. For with all that I have said and that you
|
||
|
have said, it will look very black against the two of us; do ye
|
||
|
mark that? Well, follow me out, and ye'll, I'll see that I'll
|
||
|
have to get a paper out against ye mysel'; have to offer a
|
||
|
reward for ye; ay, will I! It's a sore thing to do between such
|
||
|
near friends; but if I get the dirdum[3] of this dreadful
|
||
|
accident, I'll have to fend for myself, man. Do ye see that?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He spoke with a pleading earnestness, taking Alan by the
|
||
|
breast of the coat.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay" said Alan, "I see that."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And ye'll have to be clear of the country, Alan -- ay, and
|
||
|
clear of Scotland -- you and your friend from the Lowlands, too.
|
||
|
For I'll have to paper your friend from the Lowlands. Ye see
|
||
|
that, Alan -- say that ye see that!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I thought Alan flushed a bit. "This is unco hard on me that
|
||
|
brought him here, James," said he, throwing his head back. "It's
|
||
|
like making me a traitor!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now, Alan, man!" cried James. "Look things in the face!
|
||
|
He'll be papered anyway; Mungo Campbell'll be sure to paper him;
|
||
|
what matters if I paper him too? And then, Alan, I am a man that
|
||
|
has a family." And then, after a little pause on both sides,
|
||
|
"And, Alan, it'll be a jury of Campbells," said he.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There's one thing," said Alan, musingly, "that naebody
|
||
|
kens his name."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Nor yet they shallnae, Alan! There's my hand on that,"
|
||
|
cried James, for all the world as if he had really known my name
|
||
|
and was foregoing some advantage. "But just the habit he was in,
|
||
|
and what he looked like, and his age, and the like? I couldnae
|
||
|
well do less."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I wonder at your father's son," cried Alan, sternly.
|
||
|
"Would ye sell the lad with a gift? Would ye change his clothes
|
||
|
and then betray him?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, no, Alan," said James. "No, no: the habit he took off
|
||
|
-- the habit Mungo saw him in." But I thought he seemed
|
||
|
crestfallen; indeed, he was clutching at every straw, and all
|
||
|
the time, I dare say, saw the faces of his hereditary foes on
|
||
|
the bench, and in the jury-box, and the gallows in the
|
||
|
background.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, sir" says Alan, turning to me, "what say ye to,
|
||
|
that? Ye are here under the safeguard of my honour; and it's my
|
||
|
part to see nothing done but what shall please you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have but one word to say," said I; "for to all this
|
||
|
dispute I am a perfect stranger. But the plain common-sense is
|
||
|
to set the blame where it belongs, and that is on the man who
|
||
|
fired the shot. Paper him, as ye call it, set the hunt on him;
|
||
|
and let honest, innocent folk show their faces in safety." But
|
||
|
at this both Alan and James cried out in horror; bidding me hold
|
||
|
my tongue, for that was not to be thought of; and asking me what
|
||
|
the Camerons would think? (which confirmed me, it must have been
|
||
|
a Cameron from Mamore that did the act) and if I did not see
|
||
|
that the lad might be caught? "Ye havenae surely thought of
|
||
|
that?" said they, with such innocent earnestness, that my hands
|
||
|
dropped at my side and I despaired of argument.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Very well, then," said I, "paper me, if you please, paper
|
||
|
Alan, paper King George! We're all three innocent, and that
|
||
|
seems to be what's wanted. But at least, sir," said I to James,
|
||
|
recovering from my little fit of annoyance, "I am Alan's friend,
|
||
|
and if I can be helpful to friends of his, I will not stumble at
|
||
|
the risk."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I thought it best to put a fair face on my consent, for I
|
||
|
saw Alan troubled; and, besides (thinks I to myself), as soon as
|
||
|
my back is turned, they will paper me, as they call it, whether
|
||
|
I consent or not. But in this I saw I was wrong; for I had no
|
||
|
sooner said the words, than Mrs. Stewart leaped out of her
|
||
|
chair, came running over to us, and wept first upon my neck and
|
||
|
then on Alan's, blessing God for our goodness to her family.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As for you, Alan, it was no more than your bounden duty,"
|
||
|
she said. "But for this lad that has come here and seen us at
|
||
|
our worst, and seen the goodman fleeching like a suitor, him
|
||
|
that by rights should give his commands like any king -- as for
|
||
|
you, my lad," she says, "my heart is wae not to have your name,
|
||
|
but I have your face; and as long as my heart beats under my
|
||
|
bosom, I will keep it, and think of it, and bless it." And with
|
||
|
that she kissed me, and burst once more into such sobbing, that
|
||
|
I stood abashed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hoot, hoot," said Alan, looking mighty silly. "The day
|
||
|
comes unco soon in this month of July; and to-morrow there'll be
|
||
|
a fine to-do in Appin, a fine riding of dragoons, and crying of,
|
||
|
Cruachan!,[4] and running of red-coats; and it behoves you and
|
||
|
me to the sooner be gone."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thereupon we said farewell, and set out again, bending
|
||
|
somewhat eastwards, in a fine mild dark night, and over much the
|
||
|
same broken country as before.
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] Blame.
|
||
|
[2] Mad.
|
||
|
[3] Blame.
|
||
|
[4] The rallying-word of the Campbells.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XX
|
||
|
THE FLIGHT IN THE HEATHER: THE ROCKS
|
||
|
|
||
|
SOMETIMES we walked, sometimes ran; and as it drew on to
|
||
|
morning, walked ever the less and ran the more. Though, upon its
|
||
|
face, that country appeared to be a desert, yet there were huts
|
||
|
and houses of the people, of which we must have passed more than
|
||
|
twenty, hidden in quiet places of the hills. When we came to one
|
||
|
of these, Alan would leave me in the way, and go himself and rap
|
||
|
upon the side of the house and speak awhile at the window with
|
||
|
some sleeper awakened. This was to pass the news; which, in that
|
||
|
country, was so much of a duty that Alan must pause to attend to
|
||
|
it even while fleeing for his life; and so well attended to by
|
||
|
others, that in more than half of the houses where we called
|
||
|
they had heard already of the murder. In the others, as well as
|
||
|
I could make out (standing back at a distance and hearing a
|
||
|
strange tongue), the news was received with more of
|
||
|
consternation than surprise.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For all our hurry, day began to come in while we were still
|
||
|
far from any shelter. It found us in a prodigious valley, strewn
|
||
|
with rocks and where ran a foaming river. Wild mountains stood
|
||
|
around it; there grew there neither grass nor trees; and I have
|
||
|
sometimes thought since then, that it may have been the valley
|
||
|
called Glencoe, where the massacre was in the time of King
|
||
|
William. But for the details of our itinerary, I am all to seek;
|
||
|
our way lying now by short cuts, now by great detours; our pace
|
||
|
being so hurried, our time of journeying usually by night; and
|
||
|
the names of such places as I asked and heard being in the
|
||
|
Gaelic tongue and the more easily forgotten.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The first peep of morning, then, showed us this horrible
|
||
|
place, and I could see Alan knit his brow.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This is no fit place for you and me," he said. "This is a
|
||
|
place they're bound to watch."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And with that he ran harder than ever down to the water-
|
||
|
side, in a part where the river was split in two among three
|
||
|
rocks. It went through with a horrid thundering that made my
|
||
|
belly quake; and there hung over the lynn a little mist of
|
||
|
spray. Alan looked neither to the right nor to the left, but
|
||
|
jumped clean upon the middle rock and fell there on his hands
|
||
|
and knees to check himself, for that rock was small and he might
|
||
|
have pitched over on the far side. I had scarce time to measure
|
||
|
the distance or to understand the peril before I had followed
|
||
|
him, and he had caught and stopped me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
So there we stood, side by side upon a small rock slippery
|
||
|
with spray, a far broader leap in front of us, and the river
|
||
|
dinning upon all sides. When I saw where I was, there came on me
|
||
|
a deadly sickness of fear, and I put my hand over my eyes. Alan
|
||
|
took me and shook me; I saw he was speaking, but the roaring of
|
||
|
the falls and the trouble of my mind prevented me from hearing;
|
||
|
only I saw his face was red with anger, and that he stamped upon
|
||
|
the rock. The same look showed me the water raging by, and the
|
||
|
mist hanging in the air: and with that I covered my eyes again
|
||
|
and shuddered.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The next minute Alan had set the brandy bottle to my lips,
|
||
|
and forced me to drink about a gill, which sent the blood into
|
||
|
my head again. Then, putting his hands to his mouth, and his
|
||
|
mouth to my ear, he shouted, "Hang or drown!" and turning his
|
||
|
back upon me, leaped over the farther branch of the stream, and
|
||
|
landed safe.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was now alone upon the rock, which gave me the more room;
|
||
|
the brandy was singing in my ears; I had this good example fresh
|
||
|
before me, and just wit enough to see that if I did not leap at
|
||
|
once, I should never leap at all. I bent low on my knees and
|
||
|
flung myself forth, with that kind of anger of despair that has
|
||
|
sometimes stood me in stead of courage. Sure enough, it was but
|
||
|
my hands that reached the full length; these slipped, caught
|
||
|
again, slipped again; and I was sliddering back into the lynn,
|
||
|
when Alan seized me, first by the hair, then by the collar, and
|
||
|
with a great strain dragged me into safety.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Never a word he said, but set off running again for his
|
||
|
life, and I must stagger to my feet and run after him. I had
|
||
|
been weary before, but now I was sick and bruised, and partly
|
||
|
drunken with the brandy; I kept stumbling as I ran, I had a
|
||
|
stitch that came near to overmaster me; and when at last Alan
|
||
|
paused under a great rock that stood there among a number of
|
||
|
others, it was none too soon for David Balfour.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A great rock I have said; but by rights it was two rocks
|
||
|
leaning together at the top, both some twenty feet high, and at
|
||
|
the first sight inaccessible. Even Alan (though you may say he
|
||
|
had as good as four hands) failed twice in an attempt to climb
|
||
|
them; and it was only at the third trial, and then by standing
|
||
|
on my shoulders and leaping up with such force as I thought must
|
||
|
have broken my collar-bone, that he secured a lodgment. Once
|
||
|
there, he let down his leathern girdle; and with the aid of that
|
||
|
and a pair of shallow footholds in the rock, I scrambled up
|
||
|
beside him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then I saw why we had come there; for the two rocks, being
|
||
|
both somewhat hollow on the top and sloping one to the other,
|
||
|
made a kind of dish or saucer, where as many as three or four
|
||
|
men might have lain hidden.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All this while Alan had not said a word, and had run and
|
||
|
climbed with such a savage, silent frenzy of hurry, that I knew
|
||
|
that he was in mortal fear of some miscarriage. Even now we were
|
||
|
on the rock he said nothing, nor so much as relaxed the frowning
|
||
|
look upon his face; but clapped flat down, and keeping only one
|
||
|
eye above the edge of our place of shelter scouted all round the
|
||
|
compass. The dawn had come quite, clear; we could see the stony
|
||
|
sides of the valley, and its bottom, which was bestrewed with
|
||
|
rocks, and the river, which went from one side to another, and
|
||
|
made white falls; but nowhere the smoke of a house, nor any
|
||
|
living creature but some eagles screaming round a cliff.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then at last Alan smiled.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay" said he, "now we have a chance;" and then looking at
|
||
|
me with some amusement. "Ye're no very gleg[1] at the jumping,"
|
||
|
said he.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At this I suppose I coloured with mortification, for he
|
||
|
added at once, "Hoots! small blame to ye! To be feared of a
|
||
|
thing and yet to do it, is what makes the prettiest kind of a
|
||
|
man. And then there was water there, and water's a thing that
|
||
|
dauntons even me. No, no," said Alan, "it's no you that's to
|
||
|
blame, it's me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I asked him why.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why," said he, "I have proved myself a gomeral this night.
|
||
|
For first of all I take a wrong road, and that in my own country
|
||
|
of Appin; so that the day has caught us where we should never
|
||
|
have been; and thanks to that, we lie here in some danger and
|
||
|
mair discomfort. And next (which is the worst of the two, for a
|
||
|
man that has been so much among the heather as myself) I have
|
||
|
come wanting a water-bottle, and here we lie for a long summer's
|
||
|
day with naething but neat spirit. Ye may think that a small
|
||
|
matter; but before it comes night, David, ye'll give me news of
|
||
|
it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was anxious to redeem my character, and offered, if he
|
||
|
would pour out the brandy, to run down and fill the bottle at
|
||
|
the river.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I wouldnae waste the good spirit either," says he. "It,s
|
||
|
been a good friend to you this night; or in my poor opinion, ye
|
||
|
would still be cocking on yon stone. And what's mair," says he,
|
||
|
"ye may have observed (you that's a man of so much penetration)
|
||
|
that Alan Breck Stewart was perhaps walking quicker than his
|
||
|
ordinar'."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You!" I cried, "you were running fit to burst."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Was I so?" said he. "Well, then, ye may depend upon it,
|
||
|
there was nae time to be lost. And now here is enough said; gang
|
||
|
you to your sleep, lad, and I'll watch."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Accordingly, I lay down to sleep; a little peaty earth had
|
||
|
drifted in between the top of the two rocks, and some bracken
|
||
|
grew there, to be a bed to me; the last thing I heard was still
|
||
|
the crying of the eagles.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I dare say it would be nine in the morning when I was
|
||
|
roughly awakened, and found Alan's hand pressed upon my mouth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Wheesht!" he whispered. "Ye were snoring."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," said I, surprised at his anxious and dark face,
|
||
|
"and why not?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He peered over the edge of the rock, and signed to me to do
|
||
|
the like.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was now high day, cloudless, and very hot. The valley
|
||
|
was as clear as in a picture. About half a mile up the water was
|
||
|
a camp of red-coats; a big fire blazed in their midst, at which
|
||
|
some were cooking; and near by, on the top of a rock about as
|
||
|
high as ours, there stood a sentry, with the sun sparkling on
|
||
|
his arms. All the way down along the river-side were posted
|
||
|
other sentries; here near together, there widelier scattered;
|
||
|
some planted like the first, on places of command, some on the
|
||
|
ground level and marching and counter-marching, so as to meet
|
||
|
half-way. Higher up the glen, where the ground was more open,
|
||
|
the chain of posts was continued by horse-soldiers, whom we
|
||
|
could see in the distance riding to and fro. Lower down, the
|
||
|
infantry continued; but as the stream was suddenly swelled by
|
||
|
the confluence of a considerable burn, they were more widely
|
||
|
set, and only watched the fords and stepping-stones.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I took but one look at them, and ducked again into my
|
||
|
place. It was strange indeed to see this valley, which had lain
|
||
|
so solitary in the hour of dawn, bristling with arms and dotted
|
||
|
with the red coats and breeches.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye see," said Alan, "this was what I was afraid of, Davie:
|
||
|
that they would watch the burn-side. They began to come in about
|
||
|
two hours ago, and, man! but ye're a grand hand at the sleeping!
|
||
|
We're in a narrow place. If they get up the sides of the hill,
|
||
|
they could easy spy us with a glass; but if they'll only keep in
|
||
|
the foot of the valley, we'll do yet. The posts are thinner down
|
||
|
the water; and, come night, we'll try our hand at getting by
|
||
|
them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And what are we to do till night?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lie here," says he, "and birstle."
|
||
|
|
||
|
That one good Scotch word, "birstle," was indeed the most
|
||
|
of the story of the day that we had now to pass. You are to
|
||
|
remember that we lay on the bare top of a rock, like scones upon
|
||
|
a girdle; the sun beat upon us cruelly; the rock grew so heated,
|
||
|
a man could scarce endure the touch of it; and the little patch
|
||
|
of earth and fern, which kept cooler, was only large enough for
|
||
|
one at a time. We took turn about to lie on the naked rock,
|
||
|
which was indeed like the position of that saint that was
|
||
|
martyred on a gridiron; and it ran in my mind how strange it
|
||
|
was, that in the same climate and at only a few days' distance,
|
||
|
I should have suffered so cruelly, first from cold upon my
|
||
|
island and now from heat upon this rock.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All the while we had no water, only raw brandy for a drink,
|
||
|
which was worse than nothing; but we kept the bottle as cool as
|
||
|
we could, burying it in the earth, and got some relief by
|
||
|
bathing our breasts and temples.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The soldiers kept stirring all day in the bottom of the
|
||
|
valley, now changing guard, now in patrolling parties hunting
|
||
|
among the rocks. These lay round in so great a number, that to
|
||
|
look for men among them was like looking for a needle in a
|
||
|
bottle of hay; and being so hopeless a task, it was gone about
|
||
|
with the less care. Yet we could see the soldiers pike their
|
||
|
bayonets among the heather, which sent a cold thrill into my
|
||
|
vitals; and they would sometimes hang about our rock, so that we
|
||
|
scarce dared to breathe.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was in this way that I first heard the right English
|
||
|
speech; one fellow as he went by actually clapping his hand upon
|
||
|
the sunny face of the rock on which we lay, and plucking it off
|
||
|
again with an oath. "I tell you it's 'ot," says he; and I was
|
||
|
amazed at the clipping tones and the odd sing-song in which he
|
||
|
spoke, and no less at that strange trick of dropping out the
|
||
|
letter "h." To be sure, I had heard Ransome; but he had taken
|
||
|
his ways from all sorts of people, and spoke so imperfectly at
|
||
|
the best, that I set down the most of it to childishness. My
|
||
|
surprise was all the greater to hear that manner of speaking in
|
||
|
the mouth of a grown man; and indeed I have never grown used to
|
||
|
it; nor yet altogether with the English grammar, as perhaps a
|
||
|
very critical eye might here and there spy out even in these
|
||
|
memoirs.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The tediousness and pain of these hours upon the rock grew
|
||
|
only the greater as the day went on; the rock getting still the
|
||
|
hotter and the sun fiercer. There were giddiness, and sickness,
|
||
|
and sharp pangs like rheumatism, to be supported. I minded then,
|
||
|
and have often minded since, on the lines in our Scotch psalm:
|
||
|
--
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The moon by night thee shall not smite,
|
||
|
|
||
|
Nor yet the sun by day;"
|
||
|
|
||
|
and indeed it was only by God's blessing that we were neither of
|
||
|
us sun-smitten.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At last, about two, it was beyond men's bearing, and there
|
||
|
was now temptation to resist, as well as pain to thole. For the
|
||
|
sun being now got a little into the west, there came a patch of
|
||
|
shade on the east side of our rock, which was the side sheltered
|
||
|
from the soldiers.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As well one death as another," said Alan, and slipped over
|
||
|
the edge and dropped on the ground on the shadowy side.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I followed him at once, and instantly fell all my length,
|
||
|
so weak was I and so giddy with that long exposure. Here, then,
|
||
|
we lay for an hour or two, aching from head to foot, as weak as
|
||
|
water, and lying quite naked to the eye of any soldier who
|
||
|
should have strolled that way. None came, however, all passing
|
||
|
by on the other side; so that our rock continued to be our
|
||
|
shield even in this new position.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Presently we began again to get a little strength; and as
|
||
|
the soldiers were now lying closer along the river-side, Alan
|
||
|
proposed that we should try a start. I was by this time afraid
|
||
|
of but one thing in the world; and that was to be set back upon
|
||
|
the rock; anything else was welcome to me; so we got ourselves
|
||
|
at once in marching order, and began to slip from rock to rock
|
||
|
one after the other, now crawling flat on our bellies in the
|
||
|
shade, now making a run for it, heart in mouth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The soldiers, having searched this side of the valley after
|
||
|
a fashion, and being perhaps somewhat sleepy with the sultriness
|
||
|
of the afternoon, had now laid by much of their vigilance, and
|
||
|
stood dozing at their posts or only kept a look-out along the
|
||
|
banks of the river; so that in this way, keeping down the valley
|
||
|
and at the same time towards the mountains, we drew steadily
|
||
|
away from their neighbourhood. But the business was the most
|
||
|
wearing I had ever taken part in. A man had need of a hundred
|
||
|
eyes in every part of him, to keep concealed in that uneven
|
||
|
country and within cry of so many and scattered sentries. When
|
||
|
we must pass an open place, quickness was not all, but a swift
|
||
|
judgment not only of the lie of the whole country, but of the
|
||
|
solidity of every stone on which we must set foot; for the
|
||
|
afternoon was now fallen so breathless that the rolling of a
|
||
|
pebble sounded abroad like a pistol shot, and would start the
|
||
|
echo calling among the hills and cliffs.
|
||
|
|
||
|
By sundown we had made some distance, even by our slow rate
|
||
|
of progress, though to be sure the sentry on the rock was still
|
||
|
plainly in our view. But now we came on something that put all
|
||
|
fears out of season; and that was a deep rushing burn, that tore
|
||
|
down, in that part, to join the glen river. At the sight of this
|
||
|
we cast ourselves on the ground and plunged head and shoulders
|
||
|
in the water; and I cannot tell which was the more pleasant, the
|
||
|
great shock as the cool stream went over us, or the greed with
|
||
|
which we drank of it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We lay there (for the banks hid us), drank again and again,
|
||
|
bathed our chests, let our wrists trail in the running water
|
||
|
till they ached with the chill; and at last, being wonderfullv
|
||
|
renewed, we got out the meal-bag and made drammach in the iron
|
||
|
pan. This, though it is but cold water mingled with oatmeal, yet
|
||
|
makes a good enough dish for a hungry man; and where there are
|
||
|
no means of making fire, or (as in our case) good reason for not
|
||
|
making one, it is the chief stand-by of those who have taken to
|
||
|
the heather.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As soon as the shadow of the night had fallen, we set forth
|
||
|
again, at first with the same caution, but presently with more
|
||
|
boldness, standing our full height and stepping out at a good
|
||
|
pace of walking. The way was very intricate, lying up the steep
|
||
|
sides of mountains and along the brows of cliffs; clouds had
|
||
|
come in with the sunset, and the night was dark and cool; so
|
||
|
that I walked without much fatigue, but in continual fear of
|
||
|
falling and rolling down the mountains, and with no guess at our
|
||
|
direction.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The moon rose at last and found us still on the road; it
|
||
|
was in its last quarter, and was long beset with clouds; but
|
||
|
after awhile shone out and showed me many dark heads of
|
||
|
mountains, and was reflected far underneath us on the narrow arm
|
||
|
of a sea-loch.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At this sight we both paused: I struck with wonder to find
|
||
|
myself so high and walking (as it seemed to me) upon clouds;
|
||
|
Alan to make sure of his direction.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Seemingly he was well pleased, and he must certainly have
|
||
|
judged us out of ear-shot of all our enemies; for throughout the
|
||
|
rest of our night-march he beguiled the way with whistling of
|
||
|
many tunes, warlike, merry, plaintive; reel tunes that made the
|
||
|
foot go faster; tunes of my own south country that made me fain
|
||
|
to be home from my adventures; and all these, on the great,
|
||
|
dark, desert mountains, making company upon the way.
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] Brisk.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXI
|
||
|
THE FLIGHT IN THE HEATHER: THE HEUGH OF CORRYNAKIEGH
|
||
|
|
||
|
EARLY as day comes in the beginning of July, it was still dark
|
||
|
when we reached our destination, a cleft in the head of a great
|
||
|
mountain, with a water running through the midst, and upon the
|
||
|
one hand a shallow cave in a rock. Birches grew there in a thin,
|
||
|
pretty wood, which a little farther on was changed into a wood
|
||
|
of pines. The burn was full of trout; the wood of cushat-doves;
|
||
|
on the open side of the mountain beyond, whaups would be always
|
||
|
whistling, and cuckoos were plentiful. From the mouth of the
|
||
|
cleft we looked down upon a part of Mamore, and on the sea-loch
|
||
|
that divides that country from Appin; and this from so great a
|
||
|
height as made it my continual wonder and pleasure to sit and
|
||
|
behold them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The name of the cleft was the Heugh of Corrynakiegh; and
|
||
|
although from its height and being so near upon the sea, it was
|
||
|
often beset with clouds, yet it was on the whole a pleasant
|
||
|
place, and the five days we lived in it went happily.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We slept in the cave, making our bed of heather bushes
|
||
|
which we cut for that purpose, and covering ourselves with
|
||
|
Alan's great-coat. There was a low concealed place, in a turning
|
||
|
of the glen, where we were so bold as to make fire: so that we
|
||
|
could warm ourselves when the clouds set in, and cook hot
|
||
|
porridge, and grill the little trouts that we caught with our
|
||
|
hands under the stones and overhanging banks of the burn. This
|
||
|
was indeed our chief pleasure and business; and not only to save
|
||
|
our meal against worse times, but with a rivalry that much
|
||
|
amused us, we spent a great part of our days at the water-side,
|
||
|
stripped to the waist and groping about or (as they say)
|
||
|
guddling for these fish. The largest we got might have been a
|
||
|
quarter of a pound; but they were of good flesh and flavour, and
|
||
|
when broiled upon the coals, lacked only a little salt to be
|
||
|
delicious.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In any by-time Alan must teach me to use my sword, for my
|
||
|
ignorance had much distressed him; and I think besides, as I had
|
||
|
sometimes the upper-hand of him in the fishing, he was not sorry
|
||
|
to turn to an exercise where he had so much the upper-hand of
|
||
|
me. He made it somewhat more of a pain than need have been, for
|
||
|
he stormed at me all through the lessons in a very violent
|
||
|
manner of scolding, and would push me so close that I made sure
|
||
|
he must run me through the body. I was often tempted to turn
|
||
|
tail, but held my ground for all that, and got some profit of my
|
||
|
lessons; if it was but to stand on guard with an assured
|
||
|
countenance, which is often all that is required. So, though I
|
||
|
could never in the least please my master, I was not altogether
|
||
|
displeased with myself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In the meanwhile, you are not to suppose that we neglected
|
||
|
our chief business, which was to get away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It will be many a long, day" Alan said to me on our first
|
||
|
morning, "before the red-coats think upon seeking Corrynakiegh;
|
||
|
so now we must get word sent to James, and he must find the
|
||
|
siller for us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And how shall we send that word?" says I. "We are here in
|
||
|
a desert place, which yet we dare not leave; and unless ye get
|
||
|
the fowls of the air to be your messengers, I see not what we
|
||
|
shall be able to do."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay?" said Alan. "Ye're a man of small contrivance, David."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thereupon he fell in a muse, looking in the embers of the
|
||
|
fire; and presently, getting a piece of wood, he fashioned it in
|
||
|
a cross, the four ends of which he blackened on the coals. Then
|
||
|
he looked at me a little shyly.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Could ye lend me my button?" says he. "It seems a strange
|
||
|
thing to ask a gift again, but I own I am laith to cut another."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I gave him the button; whereupon he strung it on a strip of
|
||
|
his great-coat which he had used to bind the cross; and tying in
|
||
|
a little sprig of birch and another of fir, he looked upon his
|
||
|
work with satisfaction.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now," said he, "there is a little clachan" (what is called
|
||
|
a hamlet in the English) "not very far from Corrynakiegh, and it
|
||
|
has the name of Koalisnacoan. There there are living many
|
||
|
friends of mine whom I could trust with my life, and some that
|
||
|
I am no just so sure of. Ye see, David, there will be money set
|
||
|
upon our heads; James himsel' is to set money on them; and as
|
||
|
for the Campbells, they would never spare siller where there was
|
||
|
a Stewart to be hurt. If it was otherwise, I would go down to
|
||
|
Koalisnacoan whatever, and trust my life into these people's
|
||
|
hands as lightly as I would trust another with my glove."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But being so?" said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Being so," said he, "I would as lief they didnae see me.
|
||
|
There's bad folk everywhere, and what's far worse, weak ones. So
|
||
|
when it comes dark again, I will steal down into that clachan,
|
||
|
and set this that I have been making in the window of a good
|
||
|
friend of mine, John Breck Maccoll, a bouman[1] of Appin's."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"With all my heart," says I; "and if he finds it, what is
|
||
|
he to think?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," says Alan, "I wish he was a man of more
|
||
|
penetration, for by my troth I am afraid he will make little
|
||
|
enough of it! But this is what I have in my mind. This cross is
|
||
|
something in the nature of the crosstarrie, or fiery cross,
|
||
|
which is the signal of gathering in our clans; yet he will know
|
||
|
well enough the clan is not to rise, for there it is standing in
|
||
|
his window, and no word with it. So he will say to himsel', The
|
||
|
clan is not to rise, but there is something. Then he will see my
|
||
|
button, and that was Duncan Stewart's. And then he will say to
|
||
|
himsel', The son of Duncan is in the heather, and has need of
|
||
|
me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," said I, "it may be. But even supposing so, there is
|
||
|
a good deal of heather between here and the Forth."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And that is a very true word," says Alan. "But then John
|
||
|
Breck will see the sprig of birch and the sprig of pine; and he
|
||
|
will say to himsel' (if he is a man of any penetration at all,
|
||
|
which I misdoubt), Alan will be lying in a wood which is both of
|
||
|
pines and birches. Then he will think to himsel', That is not so
|
||
|
very rife hereabout; and then he will come and give us a look up
|
||
|
in Corrynakiegh. And if he does not, David, the devil may fly
|
||
|
away with him, for what I care; for he will no be worth the salt
|
||
|
to his porridge."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Eh, man," said I, drolling with him a little, "you're very
|
||
|
ingenious! But would it not be simpler for you to write him a
|
||
|
few words in black and white?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And that is an excellent observe, Mr. Balfour of Shaws,"
|
||
|
says Alan, drolling with me; "and it would certainly be much
|
||
|
simpler for me to write to him, but it would be a sore job for
|
||
|
John Breck to read it. He would have to go to the school for
|
||
|
two-three years; and it's possible we might be wearied waiting
|
||
|
on him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
So that night Alan carried down his fiery cross and set it
|
||
|
in the bouman's window. He was troubled when he came back; for
|
||
|
the dogs had barked and the folk run out from their houses; and
|
||
|
he thought he had heard a clatter of arms and seen a red-coat
|
||
|
come to one of the doors. On all accounts we lay the next day in
|
||
|
the borders of the wood and kept a close look-out, so that if it
|
||
|
was John Breck that came we might be ready to guide him, and if
|
||
|
it was the red-coats we should have time to get away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
About noon a man was to be spied, straggling up the open
|
||
|
side of the mountain in the sun, and looking round him as he
|
||
|
came, from under his hand. No sooner had Alan seen him than he
|
||
|
whistled; the man turned and came a little towards us: then Alan
|
||
|
would give another "peep!" and the man would come still nearer;
|
||
|
and so by the sound of whistling, he was guided to the spot
|
||
|
where we lay.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He was a ragged, wild, bearded man, about forty, grossly
|
||
|
disfigured with the small pox, and looked both dull and savage.
|
||
|
Although his English was very bad and broken, yet Alan
|
||
|
(according to his very handsome use, whenever I was by) would
|
||
|
suffer him to speak no Gaelic. Perhaps the strange language made
|
||
|
him appear more backward than he really was; but I thought he
|
||
|
had little good-will to serve us, and what he had was the child
|
||
|
of terror.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Alan would have had him carry a message to James; but the
|
||
|
bouman would hear of no message. "She was forget it," he said in
|
||
|
his screaming voice; and would either have a letter or wash his
|
||
|
hands of us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I thought Alan would be gravelled at that, for we lacked
|
||
|
the means of writing in that desert. But he was a man of more
|
||
|
resources than I knew; searched the wood until he found the
|
||
|
quill of a cushat-dove, which he shaped into a pen; made himself
|
||
|
a kind of ink with gunpowder from his horn and water from the
|
||
|
running stream; and tearing a corner from his French military
|
||
|
commission (which he carried in his pocket, like a talisman to
|
||
|
keep him from the gallows), he sat down and wrote as follows:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"DEAR KINSMAN, -- Please send the money by the bearer to
|
||
|
the place he kens of.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your affectionate cousin,
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A. S."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This he intrusted to the bouman, who promised to make what
|
||
|
manner of speed he best could, and carried it off with him down
|
||
|
the hill.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He was three full days gone, but about five in the evening
|
||
|
of the third, we heard a whistling in the wood, which Alan
|
||
|
answered; and presently the bouman came up the water-side,
|
||
|
looking for us, right and left. He seemed less sulky than
|
||
|
before, and indeed he was no doubt well pleased to have got to
|
||
|
the end of such a dangerous commission.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He gave us the news of the country; that it was alive with
|
||
|
red-coats; that arms were being found, and poor folk brought in
|
||
|
trouble daily; and that James and some of his servants were
|
||
|
already clapped in prison at Fort William, under strong
|
||
|
suspicion of complicity. It seemed it was noised on all sides
|
||
|
that Alan Breck had fired the shot; and there was a bill issued
|
||
|
for both him and me, with one hundred pounds reward.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was all as bad as could be; and the little note the
|
||
|
bouman had carried us from Mrs. Stewart was of a miserable
|
||
|
sadness. In it she besought Alan not to let himself be captured,
|
||
|
assuring him, if he fell in the hands of the troops, both he and
|
||
|
James were no better than dead men. The money she had sent was
|
||
|
all that she could beg or borrow, and she prayed heaven we could
|
||
|
be doing with it. Lastly, she said, she enclosed us one of the
|
||
|
bills in which we were described.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This we looked upon with great curiosity and not a little
|
||
|
fear, partly as a man may look in a mirror, partly as he might
|
||
|
look into the barrel of an enemy's gun to judge if it be truly
|
||
|
aimed. Alan was advertised as "a small, pock-marked, active man
|
||
|
of thirty-five or thereby, dressed in a feathered hat, a French
|
||
|
side-coat of blue with silver buttons, and lace a great deal
|
||
|
tarnished, a red waistcoat and breeches of black, shag;" and I
|
||
|
as "a tall strong lad of about eighteen, wearing an old blue
|
||
|
coat, very ragged, an old Highland bonnet, a long homespun
|
||
|
waistcoat, blue breeches; his legs bare, low-country shoes,
|
||
|
wanting the toes; speaks like a Lowlander, and has no beard."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Alan was well enough pleased to see his finery so fully
|
||
|
remembered and set down; only when he came to the word tarnish,
|
||
|
he looked upon his lace like one a little mortified. As for
|
||
|
myself, I thought I cut a miserable figure in the bill; and yet
|
||
|
was well enough pleased too, for since I had changed these rags,
|
||
|
the description had ceased to be a danger and become a source of
|
||
|
safety.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Alan," said I, "you should change your clothes."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Na, troth!" said Alan, "I have nae others. A fine sight I
|
||
|
would be, if I went back to France in a bonnet!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
This put a second reflection in my mind: that if I were to
|
||
|
separate from Alan and his tell-tale clothes I should be safe
|
||
|
against arrest, and might go openly about my business. Nor was
|
||
|
this all; for suppose I was arrested when I was alone, there was
|
||
|
little against me; but suppose I was taken in company with the
|
||
|
reputed murderer, my case would begin to be grave. For
|
||
|
generosity's sake I dare not speak my mind upon this head; but
|
||
|
I thought of it none the less.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I thought of it all the more, too, when the bouman brought
|
||
|
out a green purse with four guineas in gold, and the best part
|
||
|
of another in small change. True, it was more than I had. But
|
||
|
then Alan, with less than five guineas, had to get as far as
|
||
|
France; I, with my less than two, not beyond Queensferry; so
|
||
|
that taking things in their proportion, Alan's society was not
|
||
|
only a peril to my life, but a burden on my purse.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But there was no thought of the sort in the honest head of
|
||
|
my companion. He believed he was serving, helping, and
|
||
|
protecting me. And what could I do but hold my peace, and chafe,
|
||
|
and take my chance of it?
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's little enough," said Alan, putting the purse in his
|
||
|
pocket, "but it'll do my business. And now, John Breck, if ye
|
||
|
will hand me over my button, this gentleman and me will be for
|
||
|
taking the road."
|
||
|
|
||
|
But the bouman, after feeling about in a hairy purse that
|
||
|
hung in front of him in the Highland manner (though he wore
|
||
|
otherwise the Lowland habit, with sea-trousers), began to roll
|
||
|
his eyes strangely, and at last said, "Her nainsel will loss
|
||
|
it," meaning he thought he had lost it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What!" cried Alan, "you will lose my button, that was my
|
||
|
father's before me? Now I will tell you what is in my mind, John
|
||
|
Breck: it is in my mind this is the worst day's work that ever
|
||
|
ye did since ye was born."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And as Alan spoke, he set his hands on his knees and looked
|
||
|
at the bouman with a smiling mouth, and that dancing light in
|
||
|
his eyes that meant mischief to his enemies.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Perhaps the bouman was honest enough; perhaps he had meant
|
||
|
to cheat and then, finding himself alone with two of us in a
|
||
|
desert place, cast back to honesty as being safer; at least, and
|
||
|
all at once, he seemed to find that button and handed it to
|
||
|
Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, and it is a good thing for the honour of the
|
||
|
Maccolls," said Alan, and then to me, "Here is my button back
|
||
|
again, and I thank you for parting with it, which is of a piece
|
||
|
with all your friendships to me." Then he took the warmest
|
||
|
parting of the bouman. "For," says he, "ye have done very well
|
||
|
by me, and set your neck at a venture, and I will always give
|
||
|
you the name of a good man."
|
||
|
Lastly, the bouman took himself off by one way; and Alan I
|
||
|
(getting our chattels together) struck into another to resume
|
||
|
our flight.
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] A bouman is a tenant who takes stock from the landlord and
|
||
|
shares with him the increase.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXII
|
||
|
THE FLIGHT IN THE HEATHER: THE MOOR
|
||
|
|
||
|
SOME seven hours' incessant, hard travelling brought us early in
|
||
|
the morning to the end of a range of mountains. In front of us
|
||
|
there lay a piece of low, broken, desert land, which we must now
|
||
|
cross. The sun was not long up, and shone straight in our eyes;
|
||
|
a little, thin mist went up from the face of the moorland like
|
||
|
a smoke; so that (as Alan said) there might have been twenty
|
||
|
squadron of dragoons there and we none the wiser.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We sat down, therefore, in a howe of the hill-side till the
|
||
|
mist should have risen, and made ourselves a dish of drammach,
|
||
|
and held a council of war.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"David," said Alan, "this is the kittle bit. Shall we lie
|
||
|
here till it comes night, or shall we risk it, and stave on
|
||
|
ahead?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," said I, "I am tired indeed, but I could walk as far
|
||
|
again, if that was all."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay, but it isnae," said Alan, "nor yet the half. This is
|
||
|
how we stand: Appin's fair death to us. To the south it's all
|
||
|
Campbells, and no to be thought of. To the north; well, there's
|
||
|
no muckle to be gained by going north; neither for you, that
|
||
|
wants to get to Queensferry, nor yet for me, that wants to get
|
||
|
to France. Well, then, we'll can strike east."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"East be it!" says I, quite cheerily; but I was thinking"
|
||
|
in to myself: "O, man, if you would only take one point of the
|
||
|
compass and let me take any other, it would be the best for both
|
||
|
of us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, then, east, ye see, we have the muirs," said Alan.
|
||
|
"Once there, David, it's mere pitch-and-toss. Out on yon bald,
|
||
|
naked, flat place, where can a body turn to? Let the red-coats
|
||
|
come over a hill, they can spy you miles away; and the sorrow's
|
||
|
in their horses' heels, they would soon ride you down. It's no
|
||
|
good place, David; and I'm free to say, it's worse by daylight
|
||
|
than by dark."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Alan," said I, "hear my way of it. Appin's death for us;
|
||
|
we have none too much money, nor yet meal; the longer they seek,
|
||
|
the nearer they may guess where we are; it's all a risk; and I
|
||
|
give my word to go ahead until we drop."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Alan was delighted. "There are whiles," said he, "when ye
|
||
|
are altogether too canny and Whiggish to be company for a
|
||
|
gentleman like me; but there come other whiles when ye show
|
||
|
yoursel' a mettle spark; and it's then, David, that I love ye
|
||
|
like a brother."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The mist rose and died away, and showed us that country
|
||
|
lying as waste as the sea; only the moorfowl and the pewees
|
||
|
crying upon it, and far over to the east, a herd of deer, moving
|
||
|
like dots. Much of it was red with heather; much of the rest
|
||
|
broken up with bogs and hags and peaty pools; some had been
|
||
|
burnt black in a heath fire; and in another place there was
|
||
|
quite a forest of dead firs, standing like skeletons. A
|
||
|
wearier-looking desert man never saw; but at least it was clear
|
||
|
of troops, which was our point.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We went down accordingly into the waste, and began to make
|
||
|
our toilsome and devious travel towards the eastern verge. There
|
||
|
were the tops of mountains all round (you are to remember) from
|
||
|
whence we might be spied at any moment; so it behoved us to keep
|
||
|
in the hollow parts of the moor, and when these turned aside
|
||
|
from our direction to move upon its naked face with infinite
|
||
|
care. Sometimes, for half an hour together, we must crawl from
|
||
|
one heather bush to another, as hunters do when they are hard
|
||
|
upon the deer. It was a clear day again, with a blazing sun; the
|
||
|
water in the brandy bottle was soon gone; and altogether, if I
|
||
|
had guessed what it would be to crawl half the time upon my
|
||
|
belly and to walk much of the rest stooping nearly to the knees,
|
||
|
I should certainly have held back from such a killing
|
||
|
enterprise.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Toiling and resting and toiling again, we wore away the
|
||
|
morning; and about noon lay down in a thick bush of heather to
|
||
|
sleep. Alan took the first watch; and it seemed to me I had
|
||
|
scarce closed my eyes before I was shaken up to take the second.
|
||
|
We had no clock to go by; and Alan stuck a sprig of heath in the
|
||
|
ground to serve instead; so that as soon as the shadow of the
|
||
|
bush should fall so far to the east, I might know to rouse him.
|
||
|
But I was by this time so weary that I could have slept twelve
|
||
|
hours at a stretch; I had the taste of sleep in my throat; my
|
||
|
joints slept even when my mind was waking; the hot smell of the
|
||
|
heather, and the drone of the wild bees, were like possets to
|
||
|
me; and every now and again I would give a jump and find I had
|
||
|
been dozing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The last time I woke I seemed to come back from farther
|
||
|
away, and thought the sun had taken a great start in the
|
||
|
heavens. I looked at the sprig of heath, and at that I could
|
||
|
have cried aloud: for I saw I had betrayed my trust. My head was
|
||
|
nearly turned with fear and shame; and at what I saw, when I
|
||
|
looked out around me on the moor, my heart was like dying in my
|
||
|
body. For sure enough, a body of horse-soldiers had come down
|
||
|
during my sleep, and were drawing near to us from the
|
||
|
south-east, spread out in the shape of a fan and riding their
|
||
|
horses to and fro in the deep parts of the heather.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I waked Alan, he glanced first at the soldiers, then
|
||
|
at the mark and the position of the sun, and knitted his brows
|
||
|
with a sudden, quick look, both ugly and anxious, which was all
|
||
|
the reproach I had of him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What are we to do now?" I asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We'll have to play at being hares," said he. "Do ye see
|
||
|
yon mountain?" pointing to one on the north-eastern sky.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, then," says he, "let us strike for that. Its name is
|
||
|
Ben Alder. it is a wild, desert mountain full of hills and
|
||
|
hollows, and if we can win to it before the morn, we may do
|
||
|
yet."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But, Alan," cried I, "that will take us across the very
|
||
|
coming of the soldiers!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I ken that fine," said he; "but if we are driven back on
|
||
|
Appin, we are two dead men. So now, David man, be brisk!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
With that he began to run forward on his hands and knees
|
||
|
with an incredible quickness, as though it were his natural way
|
||
|
of going. All the time, too, he kept winding in and out in the
|
||
|
lower parts of the moorland where we were the best concealed.
|
||
|
Some of these had been burned or at least scathed with fire; and
|
||
|
there rose in our faces (which were close to the ground) a
|
||
|
blinding, choking dust as fine as smoke. The water was long out;
|
||
|
and this posture of running on the hands and knees brings an
|
||
|
overmastering weakness and weariness, so that the joints ache
|
||
|
and the wrists faint under your weight.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now and then, indeed, where was a big bush of heather, we
|
||
|
lay awhile, and panted, and putting aside the leaves, looked
|
||
|
back at the dragoons. They had not spied us, for they held
|
||
|
straight on; a half-troop, I think, covering about two miles of
|
||
|
ground, and beating it mighty thoroughly as they went. I had
|
||
|
awakened just in time; a little later, and we must have fled in
|
||
|
front of them, instead of escaping on one side. Even as it was,
|
||
|
the least misfortune might betray us; and now and again, when a
|
||
|
grouse rose out of the heather with a clap of wings, we lay as
|
||
|
still as the dead and were afraid to breathe.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The aching and faintness of my body, the labouring of my
|
||
|
heart, the soreness of my hands, and the smarting of my throat
|
||
|
and eyes in the continual smoke of dust and ashes, had soon
|
||
|
grown to be so unbearable that I would gladly have given up.
|
||
|
Nothing but the fear of Alan lent me enough of a false kind of
|
||
|
courage to continue. As for himself (and you are to bear in mind
|
||
|
that he was cumbered with a great-coat) he had first turned
|
||
|
crimson, but as time went on the redness began to be mingled
|
||
|
with patches of white; his breath cried and whistled as it came;
|
||
|
and his voice, when he whispered his observations in my ear
|
||
|
during our halts, sounded like nothing human. Yet he seemed in
|
||
|
no way dashed in spirits, nor did he at all abate in his
|
||
|
activity. so that I was driven, to marvel at the man's
|
||
|
endurance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At length, in the first gloaming of the night, we heard a
|
||
|
trumpet sound, and looking back from among the heather, saw the
|
||
|
troop beginning to collect. A little after, they had built a
|
||
|
fire and camped for the night, about the middle of the waste.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At this I begged and besought that we might lie down and
|
||
|
sleep.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There shall be no sleep the night!" said Alan. "From now
|
||
|
on, these weary dragoons of yours will keep the crown of the
|
||
|
muirland, and none will get out of Appin but winged fowls. We
|
||
|
got through in the nick of time, and shall we jeopard what we've
|
||
|
gained? Na, na, when the day comes, it shall find you and me in
|
||
|
a fast place on Ben Alder."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Alan," I said, "it's not the want of will: it's the
|
||
|
strength that I want. If I could, I would; but as sure as I'm
|
||
|
alive I cannot."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Very well, then," said Alan. "I'll carry ye."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I looked to see if he were jesting; but no, the little man
|
||
|
was in dead earnest; and the sight of so much resolution shamed
|
||
|
me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lead away!" said I. "I'll follow."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He gave me one look as much as to say, "Well done, David!"
|
||
|
and off he set again at his top speed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It grew cooler and even a little darker (but not much) with
|
||
|
the coming of the night. The sky was cloudless; it was still
|
||
|
early in July, and pretty far north; in the darkest part of that
|
||
|
night, you would have needed pretty good eyes to read, but for
|
||
|
all that, I have often seen it darker in a winter mid-day. Heavy
|
||
|
dew fell and drenched the moor like rain; and this refreshed me
|
||
|
for a while. When we stopped to breathe, and I had time to see
|
||
|
all about me, the clearness and sweetness of the night, the
|
||
|
shapes of the hills like things asleep, and the fire dwindling
|
||
|
away behind us, like a bright spot in the midst of the moor,
|
||
|
anger would come upon me in a clap that I must still drag myself
|
||
|
in agony and eat the dust like a worm.
|
||
|
|
||
|
By what I have read in books, I think few that have held a
|
||
|
pen were ever really wearied, or they would write of it more
|
||
|
strongly. I had no care of my life, neither past nor future, and
|
||
|
I scarce remembered there was such a lad as David Balfour. I did
|
||
|
not think of myself, but just of each fresh step which I was
|
||
|
sure would be my last, with despair -- and of Alan, who was the
|
||
|
cause of it, with hatred. Alan was in the right trade as a
|
||
|
soldier; this is the officer's part to make men continue to do
|
||
|
things, they know not wherefore, and when, if the choice was
|
||
|
offered, they would lie down where they were and be killed. And
|
||
|
I dare say I would have made a good enough private; for in these
|
||
|
last hours it never occurred to me that I had any choice but
|
||
|
just to obey as long as I was able, and die obeying.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Day began to come in, after years, I thought; and by that
|
||
|
time we were past the greatest danger, and could walk upon our
|
||
|
feet like men, instead of crawling like brutes. But, dear heart
|
||
|
have mercy! what a pair we must have made, going double like old
|
||
|
grandfathers, stumbling like babes, and as white as dead folk.
|
||
|
Never a word passed between us; each set his mouth and kept his
|
||
|
eyes in front of him, and lifted up his foot and set it down
|
||
|
again, like people lifting weights at a country, play;[1] all
|
||
|
the while, with the moorfowl crying "peep!" in the heather, and
|
||
|
the light coming slowly clearer in the east.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I say Alan did as I did. Not that ever I looked at him, for
|
||
|
I had enough ado to keep my feet; but because it is plain he
|
||
|
must have been as stupid with weariness as myself, and looked as
|
||
|
little where we were going, or we should not have walked into an
|
||
|
ambush like blind men.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It fell in this way. We were going down a heathery brae,
|
||
|
Alan leading and I following a pace or two behind, like a
|
||
|
fiddler and his wife; when upon a sudden the heather gave a
|
||
|
rustle, three or four ragged men leaped out, and the next moment
|
||
|
we were lying on our backs, each with a dirk at his throat.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I don't think I cared; the pain of this rough handling was
|
||
|
quite swallowed up by the pains of which I was already full; and
|
||
|
I was too glad to have stopped walking to mind about a dirk. I
|
||
|
lay looking up in the face of the man that held me; and I mind
|
||
|
his face was black with the sun, and his eyes very light, but I
|
||
|
was not afraid of him. I heard Alan and another whispering in
|
||
|
the Gaelic; and what they said was all one to me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then the dirks were put up, our weapons were taken away,
|
||
|
and we were set face to face, sitting in the heather.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They are Cluny's men," said Alan. "We couldnae have fallen
|
||
|
better. We're just to bide here with these, which are his
|
||
|
out-sentries, till they can get word to the chief of my
|
||
|
arrival."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now Cluny Macpherson, the chief of the clan Vourich, had
|
||
|
been one of the leaders of the great rebellion six years before;
|
||
|
there was a price on his life; and I had supposed him long ago
|
||
|
in France, with the rest of the heads of that desperate party.
|
||
|
Even tired as I was, the surprise of what I heard half wakened
|
||
|
me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What," I cried, "is Cluny still here?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay, is he so!" said Alan. "Still in his own country and
|
||
|
kept by his own clan. King George can do no more."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I think I would have asked farther, but Alan gave me the
|
||
|
put-off. "I am rather wearied," he said, "and I would like fine
|
||
|
to get a sleep." And without more words, he rolled on his face
|
||
|
in a deep heather bush, and seemed to sleep at once.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was no such thing possible for me. You have heard
|
||
|
grasshoppers whirring in the grass in the summer time? Well, I
|
||
|
had no sooner closed my eyes, than my body, and above all my
|
||
|
head, belly, and wrists, seemed to be filled with whirring
|
||
|
grasshoppers; and I must open my eyes again at once, and tumble
|
||
|
and toss, and sit up and lie down; and look at the sky which
|
||
|
dazzled me, or at Cluny's wild and dirty sentries, peering out
|
||
|
over the top of the brae and chattering to each other in the
|
||
|
Gaelic.
|
||
|
|
||
|
That was all the rest I had, until the messenger returned;
|
||
|
when, as it appeared that Cluny would be glad to receive us, we
|
||
|
must get once more upon our feet and set forward. Alan was in
|
||
|
excellent good spirits, much refreshed by his sleep, very
|
||
|
hungry, and looking pleasantly forward to a dram and a dish of
|
||
|
hot collops, of which, it seems, the messenger had brought him
|
||
|
word. For my part, it made me sick to hear of eating. I had been
|
||
|
dead-heavy before, and now I felt a kind of dreadful lightness,
|
||
|
which would not suffer me to walk. I drifted like a gossamer;
|
||
|
the ground seemed to me a cloud, the hills a feather-weight, the
|
||
|
air to have a current, like a running burn, which carried me to
|
||
|
and fro. With all that, a sort of horror of despair sat on my
|
||
|
mind, so that I could have wept at my own helplessness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I saw Alan knitting his brows at me, and supposed it was in
|
||
|
anger; and that gave me a pang of light-headed fear, like what
|
||
|
a child may have. I remember, too, that I was smiling, and could
|
||
|
not stop smiling, hard as I tried; for I thought it was out of
|
||
|
place at such a time. But my good companion had nothing in his
|
||
|
mind but kindness; and the next moment, two of the gillies had
|
||
|
me by the arms, and I began to be carried forward with great
|
||
|
swiftness (or so it appeared to me, although I dare say it was
|
||
|
slowly enough in truth), through a labyrinth of dreary glens and
|
||
|
hollows and into the heart of that dismal mountain of Ben Alder.
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] Village fair.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXIII
|
||
|
CLUNY'S CAGE
|
||
|
|
||
|
WE came at last to the foot of an exceeding steep wood, which
|
||
|
scrambled up a craggy hillside, and was crowned by a naked
|
||
|
precipice.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's here," said one of the guides, and we struck up hill.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The trees clung upon the slope, like sailors on the shrouds
|
||
|
of a ship, and their trunks were like the rounds of a ladder, by
|
||
|
which we mounted.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Quite at the top, and just before the rocky face of the
|
||
|
cliff sprang above the foliage, we found that strange house
|
||
|
which was known in the country as "Cluny's Cage." The trunks of
|
||
|
several trees had been wattled across, the intervals
|
||
|
strengthened with stakes, and the ground behind this barricade
|
||
|
levelled up with earth to make the floor. A tree, which grew out
|
||
|
from the hillside, was the living centre-beam of the roof. The
|
||
|
walls were of wattle and covered with moss. The whole house had
|
||
|
something of an egg shape; and it half hung, half stood in that
|
||
|
steep, hillside thicket, like a wasp's nest in a green hawthorn.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Within, it was large enough to shelter five or six persons
|
||
|
with some comfort. A projection of the cliff had been cunningly
|
||
|
employed to be the fireplace; and the smoke rising against the
|
||
|
face of the rock, and being not dissimilar in colour, readily
|
||
|
escaped notice from below.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was but one of Cluny's hiding-places; he had caves,
|
||
|
besides, and underground chambers in several parts of his
|
||
|
country; and following the reports of his scouts, he moved from
|
||
|
one to another as the soldiers drew near or moved away. By this
|
||
|
manner of living, and thanks to the affection of his clan, he
|
||
|
had not only stayed all this time in safety, while so many
|
||
|
others had fled or been taken and slain: but stayed four or five
|
||
|
years longer, and only went to France at last by the express
|
||
|
command of his master. There he soon died; and it is strange to
|
||
|
reflect that he may have regretted his Cage upon Ben Alder.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When we came to the door he was seated by his rock chimney,
|
||
|
watching a gillie about some cookery. He was mighty plainly
|
||
|
habited, with a knitted nightcap drawn over his ears, and smoked
|
||
|
a foul cutty pipe. For all that he had the manners of a king,
|
||
|
and it was quite a sight to see him rise out of his place to
|
||
|
welcome us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, Mr. Stewart, come awa', sir!" said he, "and bring in
|
||
|
your friend that as yet I dinna ken the name of."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And how is yourself, Cluny?" said Alan. "I hope ye do
|
||
|
brawly, sir. And I am proud to see ye, and to present to ye my
|
||
|
friend the Laird of Shaws, Mr. David Balfour."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Alan never referred to my estate without a touch of a
|
||
|
sneer, when we were alone; but with strangers, he rang the words
|
||
|
out like a herald.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Step in by, the both of ye, gentlemen," says Cluny. "I
|
||
|
make ye welcome to my house, which is a queer, rude place for
|
||
|
certain, but one where I have entertained a royal personage, Mr.
|
||
|
Stewart -- ye doubtless ken the personage I have in my eye.
|
||
|
We'll take a dram for luck, and as soon as this handless man of
|
||
|
mine has the collops ready, we'll dine and take a hand at the
|
||
|
cartes as gentlemen should. My life is a bit driegh," says he,
|
||
|
pouring out the brandy;" I see little company, and sit and twirl
|
||
|
my thumbs, and mind upon a great day that is gone by, and weary
|
||
|
for another great day that we all hope will be upon the road.
|
||
|
And so here's a toast to ye: The Restoration!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thereupon we all touched glasses and drank. I am sure I
|
||
|
wished no ill to King George; and if he had been there himself
|
||
|
in proper person, it's like he would have done as I did. No
|
||
|
sooner had I taken out the drain than I felt hugely better, and
|
||
|
could look on and listen, still a little mistily perhaps, but no
|
||
|
longer with the same groundless horror and distress of mind.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was certainly a strange place, and we had a strange
|
||
|
host. In his long hiding, Cluny had grown to have all manner of
|
||
|
precise habits, like those of an old maid. He had a particular
|
||
|
place, where no one else must sit; the Cage was arranged in a
|
||
|
particular way, which none must disturb; cookery was one of his
|
||
|
chief fancies, and even while he was greeting us in, he kept an
|
||
|
eye to the collops.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It appears, he sometimes visited or received visits from
|
||
|
his wife and one or two of his nearest friends, under the cover
|
||
|
of night; but for the more part lived quite alone, and
|
||
|
communicated only with his sentinels and the gillies that waited
|
||
|
on him in the Cage. The first thing in the morning, one of them,
|
||
|
who was a barber, came and shaved him, and gave him the news of
|
||
|
the country, of which he was immoderately greedy. There was no
|
||
|
end to his questions; he put them as earnestly as a child; and
|
||
|
at some of the answers, laughed out of all bounds of reason, and
|
||
|
would break out again laughing at the mere memory, hours after
|
||
|
the barber was gone.
|
||
|
|
||
|
To be sure, there might have been a purpose in his
|
||
|
questions; for though he was thus sequestered, and like the
|
||
|
other landed gentlemen of Scotland, stripped by the late Act of
|
||
|
Parliament of legal powers, he still exercised a patriarchal
|
||
|
justice in his clan. Disputes were brought to him in his
|
||
|
hiding-hole to be decided; and the men of his country, who would
|
||
|
have snapped their fingers at the Court of Session, laid aside
|
||
|
revenge and paid down money at the bare word of this forfeited
|
||
|
and hunted outlaw. When he was angered, which was often enough,
|
||
|
he gave his commands and breathed threats of punishment like
|
||
|
any, king; and his gillies trembled and crouched away from him
|
||
|
like children before a hasty father. With each of them, as he
|
||
|
entered, he ceremoniously shook hands, both parties touching
|
||
|
their bonnets at the same time in a military manner. Altogether,
|
||
|
I had a fair chance to see some of the inner workings of a
|
||
|
Highland clan; and this with a proscribed, fugitive chief; his
|
||
|
country conquered; the troops riding upon all sides in quest of
|
||
|
him, sometimes within a mile of where he lay; and when the least
|
||
|
of the ragged fellows whom he rated and threatened, could have
|
||
|
made a fortune by betraying him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On that first day, as soon as the collops were ready, Cluny
|
||
|
gave them with his own hand a squeeze of a lemon (for he was
|
||
|
well supplied with luxuries) and bade us draw in to our meal.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They," said he, meaning the collops, "are such as I gave
|
||
|
his Royal Highness in this very house; bating the lemon juice,
|
||
|
for at that time we were glad to get the meat and never fashed
|
||
|
for kitchen.[1] Indeed, there were mair dragoons than lemons in
|
||
|
my country in the year forty-six."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I do not know if the collops were truly very good, but my
|
||
|
heart rose against the sight of them, and I could eat but
|
||
|
little. All the while Cluny entertained us with stories of
|
||
|
Prince Charlie's stay in the Cage, giving us the very words of
|
||
|
the speakers, and rising from his place to show us where they
|
||
|
stood. By these, I gathered the Prinee was a gracious, spirited
|
||
|
boy, like the son of a race of polite kings, but not so wise as
|
||
|
Solomon. I gathered, too, that while he was in the Cage, he was
|
||
|
often drunk; so the fault that has since, by all accounts, made
|
||
|
such a wreck of him, had even then begun to show itself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We were no sooner done eating than Cluny brought out an
|
||
|
old, thumbed, greasy pack of cards, such as you may find in a
|
||
|
mean inn; and his eyes brightened in his face as he proposed
|
||
|
that we should fall to playing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now this was one of the things I had been brought up to
|
||
|
eschew like disgrace; it being held by my father neither the
|
||
|
part of a Christian nor yet of a gentleman to set his own
|
||
|
livelihood and fish for that of others, on the cast of painted
|
||
|
pasteboard. To be sure, I might have pleaded my fatigue, which
|
||
|
was excuse enough; but I thought it behoved that I should bear
|
||
|
a testimony. I must have got very red in the face, but I spoke
|
||
|
steadily, and told them I had no call to be a judge of others,
|
||
|
but for my own part, it was a matter in which I had no
|
||
|
clearness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Cluny stopped mingling the cards. "What in deil's name is
|
||
|
this?" says he. "What kind of Whiggish, canting talk is this,
|
||
|
for the house of Cluny Macpherson?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I will put my hand in the fire for Mr. Balfour," says
|
||
|
Alan. "He is an honest and a mettle gentleman, and I would have
|
||
|
ye bear in mind who says it. I bear a king's name," says he,
|
||
|
cocking his hat; "and I and any that I call friend are company
|
||
|
for the best. But the gentleman is tired, and should sleep; if
|
||
|
he has no mind to the cartes, it will never hinder you and me.
|
||
|
And I'm fit and willing, sir, to play ye any game that ye can
|
||
|
name."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sir," says Cluny, "in this poor house of mine I would have
|
||
|
you to ken that any gentleman may follow his pleasure. If your
|
||
|
friend would like to stand on his head, he is welcome. And if
|
||
|
either he, or you, or any other man, is not preceesely
|
||
|
satisfied, I will be proud to step outside with him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had no will that these two friends should cut their
|
||
|
throats for my sake.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sir," said I, "I am very wearied, as Alan says; and what's
|
||
|
more, as you are a man that likely has sons of your own, I may
|
||
|
tell you it was a promise to my father."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Say nae mair, say nae mair," said Cluny, and pointed me to
|
||
|
a bed of heather in a corner of the Cage. For all that he was
|
||
|
displeased enough, looked at me askance, and grumbled when he
|
||
|
looked. And indeed it must be owned that both my scruples and
|
||
|
the words in which I declared them, smacked somewhat of the
|
||
|
Covenanter, and were little in their place among wild Highland
|
||
|
Jacobites.
|
||
|
|
||
|
What with the brandy and the venison, a strange heaviness
|
||
|
had come over me; and I had scarce lain down upon the bed before
|
||
|
I fell into a kind of trance, in which I continued almost the
|
||
|
whole time of our stay in the Cage. Sometimes I was broad awake
|
||
|
and understood what passed; sometimes I only heard voices, or
|
||
|
men snoring, like the voice of a silly river; and the plaids
|
||
|
upon the wall dwindled down and swelled out again, like
|
||
|
firelight shadows on the roof. I must sometimes have spoken or
|
||
|
cried out, for I remember I was now and then amazed at being
|
||
|
answered; yet I was conscious of no particular nightmare, only
|
||
|
of a general, black, abiding horror -- a horror of the place I
|
||
|
was in, and the bed I lay in, and the plaids on the wall, and
|
||
|
the voices, and the fire, and myself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The barber-gillie, who was a doctor too, was called in to
|
||
|
prescribe for me; but as he spoke in the Gaelic, I understood
|
||
|
not a word of his opinion, and was too sick even to ask for a
|
||
|
translation. I knew well enough I was ill, and that was all I
|
||
|
cared about.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I paid little heed while I lay in this poor pass. But Alan
|
||
|
and Cluny were most of the time at the cards, and I am clear
|
||
|
that Alan must have begun by winning; for I remember sitting up,
|
||
|
and seeing them hard at it, and a great glittering pile of as
|
||
|
much as sixty or a hundred guineas on the table. It looked
|
||
|
strange enough, to see all this wealth in a nest upon a
|
||
|
cliff-side, wattled about growing trees. And even then, I
|
||
|
thought it seemed deep water for Alan to be riding, who had no
|
||
|
better battle-horse than a green purse and a matter of five
|
||
|
pounds.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The luck, it seems, changed on the second day. About noon
|
||
|
I was wakened as usual for dinner, and as usual refused to eat,
|
||
|
and was given a dram with some bitter infusion which the barber
|
||
|
had prescribed. The sun was shining in at the open door of the
|
||
|
Cage, and this dazzled and offended me. Cluny sat at the table,
|
||
|
biting the pack of cards. Alan had stooped over the bed, and had
|
||
|
his face close to my eyes; to which, troubled as they were with
|
||
|
the fever, it seemed of the most shocking bigness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He asked me for a loan of my money.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What for?" said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"O, just for a loan," said he.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But why?" I repeated. "I don't see."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hut, David!" said Alan, "ye wouldnae grudge me a loan?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I would, though, if I had had my senses! But all I thought
|
||
|
of then was to get his face away, and I handed him my money.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On the morning of the third day, when we had been forty-
|
||
|
eight hours in the Cage, I awoke with a great relief of spirits,
|
||
|
very weak and weary indeed, but seeing things of the right size
|
||
|
and with their honest, everyday appearance. I had a mind to eat,
|
||
|
moreover, rose from bed of my own movement, and as soon as we
|
||
|
had breakfasted, stepped to the entry of the Cage and sat down
|
||
|
outside in the top of the wood. It was a grey day with a cool,
|
||
|
mild air: and I sat in a dream all morning, only disturbed by
|
||
|
the passing by of Cluny's scouts and servants coming with
|
||
|
provisions and reports; for as the coast was at that time clear,
|
||
|
you might almost say he held court openly.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When I returned, he and Alan had laid the cards aside, and
|
||
|
were questioning a gillie; and the chief turned about and spoke
|
||
|
to me in the Gaelic.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have no Gaelic, sir," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now since the card question, everything I said or did had
|
||
|
the power of annoying Cluny. "Your name has more sense than
|
||
|
yourself, then," said he angrily. "for it's good Gaelic. But the
|
||
|
point is this. My scout reports all clear in the south, and the
|
||
|
question is, have ye the strength to go?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I saw cards on the table, but no gold; only a heap of
|
||
|
little written papers, and these all on Cluny's side. Alan,
|
||
|
besides, had an odd look, like a man not very well content; and
|
||
|
I began to have a strong misgiving.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not know if I am as well as I should be," said I,
|
||
|
looking at Alan; "but the little money we have has a long way to
|
||
|
carry us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Alan took his under-lip into his mouth, and looked upon the
|
||
|
ground.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"David," says he at last, "I've lost it; there's the naked
|
||
|
truth."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My money too?" said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your money too," says Alan, with a groan. "Ye shouldnae
|
||
|
have given it me. I'm daft when I get to the cartes."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hoot-toot! hoot-toot!" said Cluny. "It was all daffing;
|
||
|
it's all nonsense. Of course you'll have your money back again,
|
||
|
and the double of it, if ye'll make so free with me. It would be
|
||
|
a singular thing for me to keep it. It's not to be supposed that
|
||
|
I would be any hindrance to gentlemen in your situation; that
|
||
|
would be a singular thing!" cries he, and began to pull gold out
|
||
|
of his pocket with a mighty red face.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Alan said nothing, only looked on the ground.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Will you step to the door with me, sir?" said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Cluny said he would be very glad, and followed me readily
|
||
|
enough, but he looked flustered and put out.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And now, sir," says I, "I must first acknowledge your
|
||
|
generosity."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Nonsensical nonsense!" cries Cluny. "Where's the
|
||
|
generosity? This is just a most unfortunate affair; but what
|
||
|
would ye have me do -- boxed up in this bee-skep of a cage of
|
||
|
mine -- but just set my friends to the cartes, when I can get
|
||
|
them? And if they lose, of course, it's not to be supposed ----"
|
||
|
And here he came to a pause.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes," said I, "if they lose, you give them back their
|
||
|
money; and if they win, they carry away yours in their pouches!
|
||
|
I have said before that I grant your generosity; but to me, sir,
|
||
|
it's a very painful thing to be placed in this position."
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was a little silence, in which Cluny seemed always as
|
||
|
if he was about to speak, but said nothing. All the time he grew
|
||
|
redder and redder in the face.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am a young man," said I, "and I ask your advice. Advise
|
||
|
me as you would your son. My friend fairly lost his money, after
|
||
|
having fairly gained a far greater sum of yours; can I accept it
|
||
|
back again? Would that be the right part for me to play?
|
||
|
Whatever I do, you can see for yourself it must be hard upon a
|
||
|
man of any pride."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's rather hard on me, too, Mr. Balfour," said Cluny,
|
||
|
"and ye give me very much the look of a man that has entrapped
|
||
|
poor people to their hurt. I wouldnae have my friends come to
|
||
|
any house of mine to accept affronts; no," he cried, with a
|
||
|
sudden heat of anger, "nor yet to give them!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And so you see, sir," said I, "there is something to be
|
||
|
said upon my side; and this gambling is a very poor employ for
|
||
|
gentlefolks. But I am still waiting your opinion."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I am sure if ever Cluny hated any man it was David Balfour.
|
||
|
He looked me all over with a warlike eye, and I saw the
|
||
|
challenge at his lips. But either my youth disarmed him, or
|
||
|
perhaps his own sense of justice. Certainly it was a mortifying
|
||
|
matter for all concerned, and not least Cluny; the more credit
|
||
|
that he took it as he did."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Balfour," said he, "I think you are too nice and
|
||
|
covenanting, but for all that you have the spirit of a very
|
||
|
pretty gentleman. Upon my honest word, ye may take this money --
|
||
|
it's what I would tell my son -- and here's my hand along with
|
||
|
it!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] Condiment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXIV
|
||
|
THE FLIGHT IN THE HEATHER: THE QUARREL
|
||
|
|
||
|
ALAN and I were put across Loch Errocht under cloud of night,
|
||
|
and went down its eastern shore to another hiding-place near the
|
||
|
head of Loch Rannoch, whither we were led by one of the gillies
|
||
|
from the Cage. This fellow carried all our luggage and Alan's
|
||
|
great-coat in the bargain, trotting along under the burthen, far
|
||
|
less than the half of which used to weigh me to the ground, like
|
||
|
a stout hill pony with a feather; yet he was a man that, in
|
||
|
plain contest, I could have broken on my knee.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Doubtless it was a great relief to walk disencumbered; and
|
||
|
perhaps without that relief, and the consequent sense of liberty
|
||
|
and lightness, I could not have walked at all. I was but new
|
||
|
risen from a bed of sickness; and there was nothing in the state
|
||
|
of our affairs to hearten me for much exertion; travelling, as
|
||
|
we did, over the most dismal deserts in Scotland, under a cloudy
|
||
|
heaven, and with divided hearts among the travellers.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For long, we said nothing; marching alongside or one behind
|
||
|
the other, each with a set countenance: I, angry and proud, and
|
||
|
drawing what strength I had from these two violent and sinful
|
||
|
feelings; Alan angry and ashamed, ashamed that he had lost my
|
||
|
money, angry that I should take it so ill.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The thought of a separation ran always the stronger in my
|
||
|
mind; and the more I approved of it, the more ashamed I grew of
|
||
|
my approval. It would be a fine, handsome, generous thing,
|
||
|
indeed, for Alan to turn round and say to me: "Go, I am in the
|
||
|
most danger, and my company only increases yours." But for me to
|
||
|
turn to the friend who certainly loved me, and say to him: "You
|
||
|
are in great danger, I am in but little; your friendship is a
|
||
|
burden; go, take your risks and bear your hardships alone ----"
|
||
|
no, that was impossible; and even to think of it privily to
|
||
|
myself, made my cheeks to burn.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And yet Alan had behaved like a child, and (what is worse)
|
||
|
a treacherous child. Wheedling my money from me while I lay
|
||
|
half-conscious was scarce better than theft; and yet here he was
|
||
|
trudging by my side, without a penny to his name, and by what I
|
||
|
could see, quite blithe to sponge upon the money he had driven
|
||
|
me to beg. True, I was ready to share it with him; but it made
|
||
|
me rage to see him count upon my readiness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
These were the two things uppermost in my mind; and I could
|
||
|
open my mouth upon neither without black ungenerosity. So I did
|
||
|
the next worst, and said nothing, nor so much as looked once at
|
||
|
my companion, save with the tail of my eye.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At last, upon the other side of Loch Errocht, going over a
|
||
|
smooth, rushy place, where the walking was easy, he could bear
|
||
|
it no longer, and came close to me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"David," says he, "this is no way for two friends to take
|
||
|
a small accident. I have to say that I'm sorry; and so that's
|
||
|
said. And now if you have anything, ye'd better say it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"O," says I, "I have nothing."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He seemed disconcerted; at which I was meanly pleased.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No," said he, with rather a trembling voice, "but when I
|
||
|
say I was to blame?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, of course, ye were to blame," said I, coolly; "and
|
||
|
you will bear me out that I have never reproached you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Never," says he; "but ye ken very well that ye've done
|
||
|
worse. Are we to part? Ye said so once before. Are ye to say it
|
||
|
again? There's hills and heather enough between here and the two
|
||
|
seas, David; and I will own I'm no very keen to stay where I'm
|
||
|
no wanted."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This pierced me like a sword, and seemed to lay bare my
|
||
|
private disloyalty.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Alan Breck!" I cried; and then: "Do you think I am one to
|
||
|
turn my back on you in your chief need? You dursn't say it to my
|
||
|
face. My whole conduct's there to give the lie to it. It's true,
|
||
|
I fell asleep upon the muir; but that was from weariness, and
|
||
|
you do wrong to cast it up to me----"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Which is what I never did," said Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But aside from that," I continued, "what have I done that
|
||
|
you should even me to dogs by such a supposition? I never yet
|
||
|
failed a friend, and it's not likely I'll begin with you. There
|
||
|
are things between us that I can never forget, even if you can."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I will only say this to ye, David," said Alan, very
|
||
|
quietly, "that I have long been owing ye my life, and now I owe
|
||
|
ye money. Ye should try to make that burden light for me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This ought to have touched me, and in a manner it did, but
|
||
|
the wrong manner. I felt I was behaving, badly; and was now not
|
||
|
only angry with Alan, but angry with myself in the bargain; and
|
||
|
it made me the more cruel.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You asked me to speak," said I. "Well, then, I will. You
|
||
|
own yourself that you have done me a disservice; I have had to
|
||
|
swallow an affront: I have never reproached you, I never named
|
||
|
the thing till you did. And now you blame me," cried I, "because
|
||
|
I cannae laugh and sing as if I was glad to be affronted. The
|
||
|
next thing will be that I'm to go down upon my knees and thank
|
||
|
you for it! Ye should think more of others, Alan Breck. If ye
|
||
|
thought more of others, ye would perhaps speak less about
|
||
|
yourself; and when a friend that likes you very well has passed
|
||
|
over an offence without a word, you would be blithe to let it
|
||
|
lie, instead of making it a stick to break his back with. By
|
||
|
your own way of it, it was you that was to blame; then it
|
||
|
shouldnae be you to seek the quarrel."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Aweel," said Alan, "say nae mair."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And we fell back into our former silence; and came to our
|
||
|
journey's end, and supped, and lay down to sleep, without
|
||
|
another word.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The gillie put us across Loch Rannoch in the dusk of the
|
||
|
next day, and gave us his opinion as to our best route. This was
|
||
|
to get us up at once into the tops of the mountains: to go round
|
||
|
by a circuit, turning the heads of Glen Lyon, Glen Lochay, and
|
||
|
Glen Dochart, and come down upon the lowlands by Kippen and the
|
||
|
upper waters of the Forth. Alan was little pleased with a route
|
||
|
which led us through the country of his blood-foes, the
|
||
|
Glenorchy Campbells. He objected that by turning to the east, we
|
||
|
should come almost at once among the Athole Stewarts, a race of
|
||
|
his own name and lineage, although following a different chief,
|
||
|
and come besides by a far easier and swifter way to the place
|
||
|
whither we were bound. But the gillie, who was indeed the chief
|
||
|
man of Cluny's scouts, had good reasons to give him on all
|
||
|
hands, naming the force of troops in every district, and
|
||
|
alleging finally (as well as I could understand) that we should
|
||
|
nowhere be so little troubled as in a country of the Campbells.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Alan gave way at last, but with only half a heart. "It's
|
||
|
one of the dowiest countries in Scotland," said he. "There's
|
||
|
naething there that I ken, but heath, and crows, and Campbells.
|
||
|
But I see that ye're a man of some penetration; and be it as ye
|
||
|
please!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
We set forth accordingly by this itinerary; and for the
|
||
|
best part of three nights travelled on eerie mountains and among
|
||
|
the well-heads of wild rivers; often buried in mist, almost
|
||
|
continually blown and rained upon, and not once cheered by any
|
||
|
glimpse of sunshine. By day, we lay and slept in the drenching
|
||
|
heather; by night, incessantly clambered upon break-neck hills
|
||
|
and among rude crags. We often wandered; we were often so
|
||
|
involved in fog, that we must lie quiet till it lightened. A
|
||
|
fire was never to be thought of. Our only food was drammach and
|
||
|
a portion of cold meat that we had carried from the Cage; and as
|
||
|
for drink, Heaven knows we had no want of water.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was a dreadful time, rendered the more dreadful by the
|
||
|
gloom of the weather and the country. I was never warm; my teeth
|
||
|
chattered in my head; I was troubled with a very sore throat,
|
||
|
such as I had on the isle; I had a painful stitch in my side,
|
||
|
which never left me; and when I slept in my wet bed, with the
|
||
|
rain beating above and the mud oozing below me, it was to live
|
||
|
over again in fancy the worst part of my adventures -- to see
|
||
|
the tower of Shaws lit by lightning, Ransome carried below on
|
||
|
the men's backs, Shuan dying on the round-house floor, or Colin
|
||
|
Campbell grasping at the bosom of his coat. From such broken
|
||
|
slumbers, I would be aroused in the gloaming, to sit up in the
|
||
|
same puddle where I had slept, and sup cold drammach; the rain
|
||
|
driving sharp in my face or running down my back in icy
|
||
|
trickles; the mist enfolding us like as in a gloomy chamber --
|
||
|
or, perhaps, if the wind blew, falling suddenly apart and
|
||
|
showing us the gulf of some dark valley where the streams were
|
||
|
crying aloud.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The sound of an infinite number of rivers came up from all
|
||
|
round. In this steady rain the springs of the mountain were
|
||
|
broken up; every glen gushed water like a cistern; every stream
|
||
|
was in high spate, and had filled and overflowed its channel.
|
||
|
During our night tramps, it was solemn to hear the voice of them
|
||
|
below in the valleys, now booming like thunder, now with an
|
||
|
angry cry. I could well understand the story of the Water
|
||
|
Kelpie, that demon of the streams, who is fabled to keep wailing
|
||
|
and roaring at the ford until the coming of the doomed
|
||
|
traveller. Alan I saw believed it, or half believed it; and when
|
||
|
the cry of the river rose more than usually sharp, I was little
|
||
|
surprised (though, of course, I would still be shocked) to see
|
||
|
him cross himself in the manner of the Catholics.
|
||
|
|
||
|
During all these horrid wanderings we had no familiarity,
|
||
|
scarcely even that of speech. The truth is that I was sickening
|
||
|
for my grave, which is my best excuse. But besides that I was of
|
||
|
an unforgiving disposition from my birth, slow to take offence,
|
||
|
slower to forget it, and now incensed both against my companion
|
||
|
and myself. For the best part of two days he was unweariedly
|
||
|
kind; silent, indeed, but always ready to help, and always
|
||
|
hoping (as I could very well see) that my displeasure would blow
|
||
|
by. For the same length of time I stayed in myself, nursing my
|
||
|
anger, roughly refusing his services, and passing him over with
|
||
|
my eyes as if he had been a bush or a stone.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The second night, or rather the peep of the third day,
|
||
|
found us upon a very open hill, so that we could not follow our
|
||
|
usual plan and lie down immediately to eat and sleep. Before we
|
||
|
had reached a place of shelter, the grey had come pretty clear,
|
||
|
for though it still rained, the clouds ran higher; and Alan,
|
||
|
looking in my face, showed some marks of concern.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye had better let me take your pack," said he, for perhaps
|
||
|
the ninth time since we had parted from the scout beside Loch
|
||
|
Rannoch.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do very well, I thank you," said I, as cold as ice.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Alan flushed darkly. "I'll not offer it again," he said.
|
||
|
"I'm not a patient man, David."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I never said you were," said I, which was exactly the
|
||
|
rude, silly speech of a boy of ten.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Alan made no answer at the time, but his conduct answered
|
||
|
for him. Henceforth, it is to be thought, he quite forgave
|
||
|
himself for the affair at Cluny's; cocked his hat again, walked
|
||
|
jauntily, whistled airs, and looked at me upon one side with a
|
||
|
provoking smile.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The third night we were to pass through the western end of
|
||
|
the country of Balquhidder. It came clear and cold, with a touch
|
||
|
in the air like frost, and a northerly wind that blew the clouds
|
||
|
away and made the stars bright. The streams were full, of
|
||
|
course, and still made a great noise among the hills; but I
|
||
|
observed that Alan thought no more upon the Kelpie, and was in
|
||
|
high good spirits. As for me, the change of weather came too
|
||
|
late; I had lain in the mire so long that (as the Bible has it)
|
||
|
my very clothes" abhorred me." I was dead weary, deadly sick and
|
||
|
full of pains and shiverings; the chill of the wind went through
|
||
|
me, and the sound of it confused my ears. In this poor state I
|
||
|
had to bear from my companion something in the nature of a
|
||
|
persecution. He spoke a good deal, and never without a taunt.
|
||
|
"Whig" was the best name he had to give me. "Here," he would
|
||
|
say, "here's a dub for ye to jump, my Whiggie! I ken you're a
|
||
|
fine jumper!" And so on; all the time with a gibing voice and
|
||
|
face.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I knew it was my own doing, and no one else's; but I was
|
||
|
too miserable to repent. I felt I could drag myself but little
|
||
|
farther; pretty soon, I must lie down and die on these wet
|
||
|
mountains like a sheep or a fox, and my bones must whiten there
|
||
|
like the bones of a beast. My head was light perhaps; but I
|
||
|
began to love the prospect, I began to glory in the thought of
|
||
|
such a death, alone in the desert, with the wild eagles
|
||
|
besieging my last moments. Alan would repent then, I thought; he
|
||
|
would remember, when I was dead, how much he owed me, and the
|
||
|
remembrance would be torture. So I went like a sick, silly, and
|
||
|
bad-hearted schoolboy, feeding my anger against a fellow-man,
|
||
|
when I would have been better on my knees, crying on God for
|
||
|
mercy. And at each of Alan's taunts, I hugged myself. "Ah!"
|
||
|
thinks I to myself, "I have a better taunt in readiness; when I
|
||
|
lie down and die, you will feel it like a buffet in your face;
|
||
|
ah, what a revenge! ah, how you will regret your ingratitude and
|
||
|
cruelty!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
All the while, I was growing worse and worse. Once I had
|
||
|
fallen, my leg simply doubling under me, and this had struck
|
||
|
Alan for the moment; but I was afoot so briskly, and set off
|
||
|
again with such a natural manner, that he soon forgot the
|
||
|
incident. Flushes of heat went over me, and then spasms of
|
||
|
shuddering. The stitch in my side was hardly bearable. At last
|
||
|
I began to feel that I could trail myself no farther: and with
|
||
|
that, there came on me all at once the wish to have it out with
|
||
|
Alan, let my anger blaze, and be done with my life in a more
|
||
|
sudden manner. He had just called me "Whig." I stopped.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mr. Stewart," said I, in a voice that quivered like a
|
||
|
fiddle-string, "you are older than I am, and should know your
|
||
|
manners. Do you think it either very wise or very witty to cast
|
||
|
my politics in my teeth? I thought, where folk differed, it was
|
||
|
the part of gentlemen to differ civilly; and if I did not, I may
|
||
|
tell you I could find a better taunt than some of yours."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Alan had stopped opposite to me, his hat cocked, his hands
|
||
|
in his breeches pockets, his head a little on one side. He
|
||
|
listened, smiling evilly, as I could see by the starlight; and
|
||
|
when I had done he began to whistle a Jacobite air. It was the
|
||
|
air made in mockery of General Cope's defeat at Preston Pans:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hey, Johnnie Cope, are ye waukin' yet?
|
||
|
|
||
|
And are your drums a-beatin' yet?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
And it came in my mind that Alan, on the day of that battle, had
|
||
|
been engaged upon the royal side.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why do ye take that air, Mr. Stewart?" said I. "Is that to
|
||
|
remind me you have been beaten on both sides?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The air stopped on Alan's lips. "David!" said he.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But it's time these manners ceased," I continued; "and I
|
||
|
mean you shall henceforth speak civilly of my King and my good
|
||
|
friends the Campbells."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am a Stewart --" began Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"O!" says I, "I ken ye bear a king's name. But you are to
|
||
|
remember, since I have been in the Highlands, I have seen a good
|
||
|
many of those that bear it; and the best I can say of them is
|
||
|
this, that they would be none the worse of washing."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you know that you insult me?" said Alan, very low.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am sorry for that," said I, "for I am not done; and if
|
||
|
you distaste the sermon, I doubt the pirliecue[1] will please
|
||
|
you as little. You have been chased in the field by the grown
|
||
|
men of my party; it seems a poor kind of pleasure to out-face a
|
||
|
boy. Both the Campbells and the Whigs have beaten you; you have
|
||
|
run before them like a hare. It behoves you to speak of them as
|
||
|
of your betters."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Alan stood quite still, the tails of his great-coat
|
||
|
clapping behind him in the wind.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This is a pity" he said at last. "There are things said
|
||
|
that cannot be passed over."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I never asked you to," said I. "I am as ready as
|
||
|
yourself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ready?" said he.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ready," I repeated. "I am no blower and boaster like some
|
||
|
that I could name. Come on!" And drawing my sword, I fell on
|
||
|
guard as Alan himself had taught me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"David!" he cried. "Are ye daft? I cannae draw upon ye,
|
||
|
David. It's fair murder."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That was your look-out when you insulted me," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's the truth!" cried Alan, and he stood for a moment,
|
||
|
wringing his mouth in his hand like a man in sore perplexity.
|
||
|
"It's the bare truth," he said, and drew his sword. But before
|
||
|
I could touch his blade with mine, he had thrown it from him and
|
||
|
fallen to the ground. "Na, na," he kept saying, "na, na -- I
|
||
|
cannae, I cannae."
|
||
|
|
||
|
At this the last of my anger oozed all out of me; and I
|
||
|
found myself only sick, and sorry, and blank, and wondering at
|
||
|
myself. I would have given the world to take back what I had
|
||
|
said; but a word once spoken, who can recapture it? I minded me
|
||
|
of all Alan's kindness and courage in the past, how he had
|
||
|
helped and cheered and borne with me in our evil days; and then
|
||
|
recalled my own insults, and saw that I had lost for ever that
|
||
|
doughty friend. At the same time, the sickness that hung upon me
|
||
|
seemed to redouble, and the pang in my side was like a sword for
|
||
|
sharpness. I thought I must have swooned where I stood.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This it was that gave me a thought. No apology could blot
|
||
|
out what I had said; it was needless to think of one, none could
|
||
|
cover the offence; but where an apology was vain, a mere cry for
|
||
|
help might bring Alan back to my side. I put my pride away from
|
||
|
me. "Alan!" I said; "if ye cannae help me, I must just die
|
||
|
here."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He started up sitting, and looked at me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's true," said I. "I'm by with it. O, let me get into
|
||
|
the bield of a house -- I'll can die there easier." I had no
|
||
|
need to pretend; whether I chose or not, I spoke in a weeping
|
||
|
voice that would have melted a heart of stone.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Can ye walk?" asked Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No," said I, "not without help. This last hour my legs
|
||
|
have been fainting under me; I've a stitch in my side like a
|
||
|
red-hot iron; I cannae breathe right. If I die, ye'll can
|
||
|
forgive me, Alan? In my heart, I liked ye fine -- even when I
|
||
|
was the angriest."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Wheesht, wheesht!" cried Alan. "Dinna say that! David man,
|
||
|
ye ken --" He shut his mouth upon a sob. "Let me get my arm
|
||
|
about ye," he continued; "that's the way! Now lean upon me hard.
|
||
|
Gude kens where there's a house! We're in Balwhidder, too; there
|
||
|
should be no want of houses, no, nor friends' houses here. Do ye
|
||
|
gang easier so, Davie?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay" said I, "I can be doing this way;" and I pressed his
|
||
|
arm with my hand.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Again he came near sobbing. "Davie," said he, "I'm no a
|
||
|
right man at all; I have neither sense nor kindness; I could nae
|
||
|
remember ye were just a bairn, I couldnae see ye were dying on
|
||
|
your feet; Davie, ye'll have to try and forgive me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"O man, let's say no more about it!" said I. "We're neither
|
||
|
one of us to mend the other -- that's the truth! We must just
|
||
|
bear and forbear, man Alan. O, but my stitch is sore! Is there
|
||
|
nae house?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I'll find a house to ye, David," he said, stoutly. "We'll
|
||
|
follow down the burn, where there's bound to be houses. My poor
|
||
|
man, will ye no be better on my back?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"O, Alan," says I, "and me a good twelve inches taller?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye're no such a thing," cried Alan, with a start. "There
|
||
|
may be a trifling matter of an inch or two; I'm no saying I'm
|
||
|
just exactly what ye would call a tall man, whatever; and I dare
|
||
|
say," he added, his voice tailing off in a laughable manner,
|
||
|
"now when I come to think of it, I dare say ye'll be just about
|
||
|
right. Ay, it'll be a foot, or near hand; or may be even mair!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was sweet and laughable to hear Alan eat his words up in
|
||
|
the fear of some fresh quarrel. I could have laughed, had not my
|
||
|
stitch caught me so hard; but if I had laughed, I think I must
|
||
|
have wept too.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Alan," cried I, "what makes ye so good to me? What makes
|
||
|
ye care for such a thankless fellow?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"'Deed, and I don't, know" said Alan. "For just precisely
|
||
|
what I thought I liked about ye, was that ye never quarrelled:
|
||
|
-- and now I like ye better!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] A second sermon.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXV
|
||
|
IN BALQUHIDDER
|
||
|
|
||
|
AT the door of the first house we came to, Alan knocked, which
|
||
|
was of no very safe enterprise in such a part of the Highlands
|
||
|
as the Braes of Balquhidder. No great clan held rule there; it
|
||
|
was filled and disputed by small septs, and broken remnants, and
|
||
|
what they call "chiefless folk," driven into the wild country
|
||
|
about the springs of Forth and Teith by the advance of the
|
||
|
Campbells. Here were Stewarts and Maclarens, which came to the
|
||
|
same thing, for the Maclarens followed Alan's chief in war, and
|
||
|
made but one clan with Appin. Here, too, were many of that old,
|
||
|
proscribed, nameless, red-handed clan of the Macgregors. They
|
||
|
had always been ill-considered, and now worse than ever, having
|
||
|
credit with no side or party in the whole country of Scotland.
|
||
|
Their chief, Macgregor of Macgregor, was in exile; the more
|
||
|
immediate leader of that part of them about Balquhidder, James
|
||
|
More, Rob Roy's eldest son, lay waiting his trial in Edinburgh
|
||
|
Castle; they were in ill-blood with Highlander and Lowlander,
|
||
|
with the Grahames, the Maclarens, and the Stewarts; and Alan,
|
||
|
who took up the quarrel of any friend, however distant, was
|
||
|
extremely wishful to avoid them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chance served us very well; for it was a household of
|
||
|
Maclarens that we found, where Alan was not only welcome for his
|
||
|
name's sake but known by reputation. Here then I was got to bed
|
||
|
without delay, and a doctor fetched, who found me in a sorry
|
||
|
plight. But whether because he was a very good doctor, or I a
|
||
|
very young, strong man, I lay bedridden for no more than a week,
|
||
|
and before a month I was able to take the road again with a good
|
||
|
heart.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All this time Alan would not leave me though I often
|
||
|
pressed him, and indeed his foolhardiness in staying was a
|
||
|
common subject of outcry with the two or three friends that were
|
||
|
let into the secret. He hid by day in a hole of the braes under
|
||
|
a little wood; and at night, when the coast was clear, would
|
||
|
come into the house to visit me. I need not say if I was pleased
|
||
|
to see him; Mrs. Maclaren, our hostess, thought nothing good
|
||
|
enough for such a guest; and as Duncan Dhu (which was the name
|
||
|
of our host) had a pair of pipes in his house, and was much of
|
||
|
a lover of music, this time of my recovery was quite a festival,
|
||
|
and we commonly turned night into day.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The soldiers let us be; although once a party of two
|
||
|
companies and some dragoons went by in the bottom of the valley,
|
||
|
where I could see them through the window as I lay in bed. What
|
||
|
was much more astonishing, no magistrate came near me, and there
|
||
|
was no question put of whence I came or whither I was going; and
|
||
|
in that time of excitement, I was as free of all inquiry as
|
||
|
though I had lain in a desert. Yet my presence was known before
|
||
|
I left to all the people in Balquhidder and the adjacent parts;
|
||
|
many coming about the house on visits and these (after the
|
||
|
custom of the country) spreading the news among their
|
||
|
neighbours. The bills, too, had now been printed. There was one
|
||
|
pinned near the foot of my bed, where I could read my own not
|
||
|
very flattering portrait and, in larger characters, the amount
|
||
|
of the blood money that had been set upon my life. Duncan Dhu
|
||
|
and the rest that knew that I had come there in Alan's company,
|
||
|
could have entertained no doubt of who I was; and many others
|
||
|
must have had their guess. For though I had changed my clothes,
|
||
|
I could not change my age or person; and Lowland boys of
|
||
|
eighteen were not so rife in these parts of the world, and above
|
||
|
all about that time, that they could fail to put one thing with
|
||
|
another, and connect me with the bill. So it was, at least.
|
||
|
Other folk keep a secret among two or three near friends, and
|
||
|
somehow it leaks out; but among these clansmen, it is told to a
|
||
|
whole countryside, and they will keep it for a century.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was but one thing happened worth narrating; and that
|
||
|
is the visit I had of Robin Oig, one of the sons of the
|
||
|
notorious Rob Roy. He was sought upon all sides on a charge of
|
||
|
carrying a young woman from Balfron and marrying her (as was
|
||
|
alleged) by force; yet he stepped about Balquhidder like a
|
||
|
gentleman in his own walled policy. It was he who had shot James
|
||
|
Maclaren at the plough stilts, a quarrel never satisfied; yet he
|
||
|
walked into the house of his blood enemies as a rider[1] might
|
||
|
into a public inn.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Duncan had time to pass me word of who it was; and we
|
||
|
looked at one another in concern. You should understand, it was
|
||
|
then close upon the time of Alan's coming; the two were little
|
||
|
likely to agree; and yet if we sent word or sought to make a
|
||
|
signal, it was sure to arouse suspicion in a man under so dark
|
||
|
a cloud as the Macgregor.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He came in with a great show of civility, but like a man
|
||
|
among inferiors; took off his bonnet to Mrs. Maclaren, but
|
||
|
clapped it on his head again to speak to Duncan; and leaving
|
||
|
thus set himself (as he would have thought) in a proper light,
|
||
|
came to my bedside and bowed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am given to know, sir," says he, "that your name is
|
||
|
Balfour."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They call me David Balfour," said I, "at your service."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I would give ye my name in return, sir" he replied, "but
|
||
|
it's one somewhat blown upon of late days; and it'll perhaps
|
||
|
suffice if I tell ye that I am own brother to James More
|
||
|
Drummond or Macgregor, of whom ye will scarce have failed to
|
||
|
hear."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, sir," said I, a little alarmed; "nor yet of your
|
||
|
father, Macgregor-Campbell." And I sat up and bowed in bed; for
|
||
|
I thought best to compliment him, in case he was proud of having
|
||
|
had an outlaw to his father.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He bowed in return. "But what I am come to say, sir," he
|
||
|
went on, "is this. In the year '45, my brother raised a part of
|
||
|
the 'Gregara' and marched six companies to strike a stroke for
|
||
|
the good side; and the surgeon that marched with our clan and
|
||
|
cured my brother's leg when it was broken in the brush at
|
||
|
Preston Pans, was a gentleman of the same name precisely as
|
||
|
yourself. He was brother to Balfour of Baith; and if you are in
|
||
|
any reasonable degree of nearness one of that gentleman's kin,
|
||
|
I have come to put myself and my people at your command."
|
||
|
|
||
|
You are to remember that I knew no more of my descent than
|
||
|
any cadger's dog; my uncle, to be sure, had prated of some of
|
||
|
our high connections, but nothing to the present purpose; and
|
||
|
there was nothing left me but that bitter disgrace of owning
|
||
|
that I could not tell.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Robin told me shortly he was sorry he had put himself
|
||
|
about, turned his back upon me without a sign of salutation, and
|
||
|
as he went towards the door, I could hear him telling Duncan
|
||
|
that I was "only some kinless loon that didn't know his own
|
||
|
father." Angry as I was at these words, and ashamed of my own
|
||
|
ignorance, I could scarce keep from smiling that a man who was
|
||
|
under the lash of the law (and was indeed hanged some three
|
||
|
years later) should be so nice as to the descent of his
|
||
|
acquaintances.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Just in the door, he met Alan coming in; and the two drew
|
||
|
back and looked at each other like strange dogs. They were
|
||
|
neither of them big men, but they seemed fairly to swell out
|
||
|
with pride. Each wore a sword, and by a movement of his haunch,
|
||
|
thrust clear the hilt of it, so that it might be the more
|
||
|
readily grasped and the blade drawn.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mr. Stewart, I am thinking," says Robin.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Troth, Mr. Macgregor, it's not a name to be ashamed of,"
|
||
|
answered Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I did not know ye were in my country, sir" says Robin.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It sticks in my mind that I am in the country of my
|
||
|
friends the Maclarens," says Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That's a kittle point," returned the other. "There may be
|
||
|
two words to say to that. But I think I will have heard that you
|
||
|
are a man of your sword?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Unless ye were born deaf, Mr. Macgregor, ye will have
|
||
|
heard a good deal more than that," says Alan. "I am not the only
|
||
|
man that can draw steel in Appin; and when my kinsman and
|
||
|
captain, Ardshiel, had a talk with a gentleman of your name, not
|
||
|
so many years back, I could never hear that the Macgregor had
|
||
|
the best of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do ye mean my father, sir?" says Robin.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, I wouldnae wonder," said Alan. "The gentleman I have
|
||
|
in my mind had the ill-taste to clap Campbell to his name."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My father was an old man," returned Robin. "The match was
|
||
|
unequal. You and me would make a better pair, sir."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I was thinking that," said Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was half out of bed, and Duncan had been hanging at the
|
||
|
elbow of these fighting cocks, ready to intervene upon the least
|
||
|
occasion. But when that word was uttered, it was a case of now
|
||
|
or never; and Duncan, with something of a white face to be sure,
|
||
|
thrust himself between.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Gentlemen," said he, "I will have been thinking of a very
|
||
|
different matter, whateffer. Here are my pipes, and here are you
|
||
|
two gentlemen who are baith acclaimed pipers. It's an auld
|
||
|
dispute which one of ye's the best. Here will be a braw chance
|
||
|
to settle it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, sir," said Alan, still addressing Robin, from whom
|
||
|
indeed he had not so much as shifted his eyes, nor yet Robin
|
||
|
from him, "why, sir," says Alan, "I think I will have heard some
|
||
|
sough[2] of the sort. Have ye music, as folk say? Are ye a bit
|
||
|
of a piper?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I can pipe like a Macrimmon!" cries Robin.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And that is a very bold word," quoth Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have made bolder words good before now," returned Robin,
|
||
|
"and that against better adversaries."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is easy to try that," says Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Duncan Dhu made haste to bring out the pair of pipes that
|
||
|
was his principal possession, and to set before his guests a
|
||
|
mutton-ham and a bottle of that drink which they call Athole
|
||
|
brose, and which is made of old whiskey, strained honey and
|
||
|
sweet cream, slowly beaten together in the right order and
|
||
|
proportion. The two enemies were still on the very breach of a
|
||
|
quarrel; but down they sat, one upon each side of the peat fire,
|
||
|
with a mighty show of politeness. Maclaren pressed them to taste
|
||
|
his mutton-ham and "the wife's brose," reminding them the wife
|
||
|
was out of Athole and had a name far and wide for her skill in
|
||
|
that confection. But Robin put aside these hospitalities as bad
|
||
|
for the breath.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I would have ye to remark, sir," said Alan, "that I
|
||
|
havenae broken bread for near upon ten hours, which will be
|
||
|
worse for the breath than any brose in Scotland."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I will take no advantages, Mr. Stewart," replied Robin.
|
||
|
"Eat and drink; I'll follow you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Each ate a small portion of the ham and drank a glass of
|
||
|
the brose to Mrs. Maclaren; and then after a great number of
|
||
|
civilities, Robin took the pipes and played a little spring in
|
||
|
a very ranting manner.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay, ye can, blow" said Alan; and taking the instrument
|
||
|
from his rival, he first played the same spring in a manner
|
||
|
identical with Robin's; and then wandered into variations,
|
||
|
which, as he went on, he decorated with a perfect flight of
|
||
|
grace-notes, such as pipers love, and call the "warblers."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I had been pleased with Robin's playing, Alan's ravished
|
||
|
me.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That's no very bad, Mr. Stewart," said the rival, "but ye
|
||
|
show a poor device in your warblers."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Me!" cried Alan, the blood starting to his face. "I give
|
||
|
ye the lie."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do ye own yourself beaten at the pipes, then," said Robin,
|
||
|
"that ye seek to change them for the sword?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And that's very well said, Mr. Macgregor," returned Alan;
|
||
|
"and in the meantime" (laying a strong accent on the word) "I
|
||
|
take back the lie. I appeal to Duncan."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed, ye need appeal to naebody," said Robin. "Ye're a
|
||
|
far better judge than any Maclaren in Balquhidder: for it's a
|
||
|
God's truth that you're a very creditable piper for a Stewart.
|
||
|
Hand me the pipes." Alan did as he asked; and Robin proceeded to
|
||
|
imitate and correct some part of Alan's variations, which it
|
||
|
seemed that he remembered perfectly.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay, ye have music," said Alan, gloomily.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And now be the judge yourself, Mr. Stewart," said Robin;
|
||
|
and taking up the variations from the beginning, he worked them
|
||
|
throughout to so new a purpose, with such ingenuity and
|
||
|
sentiment, and with so odd a fancy and so quick a knack in the
|
||
|
grace-notes, that I was amazed to hear him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As for Alan, his face grew dark and hot, and he sat and
|
||
|
gnawed his fingers, like a man under some deep affront.
|
||
|
"Enough!" he cried. "Ye can blow the pipes -- make the most of
|
||
|
that." And he made as if to rise.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But Robin only held out his hand as if to ask for silence,
|
||
|
and struck into the slow measure of a pibroch. It was a fine
|
||
|
piece of music in itself, and nobly played; but it seems,
|
||
|
besides, it was a piece peculiar to the Appin Stewarts and a
|
||
|
chief favourite with Alan. The first notes were scarce out,
|
||
|
before there came a change in his face; when the time quickened,
|
||
|
he seemed to grow restless in his seat; and long before that
|
||
|
piece was at an end, the last signs of his anger died from him,
|
||
|
and he had no thought but for the music.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Robin Oig," he said, when it was done, "ye are a great
|
||
|
piper. I am not fit to blow in the same kingdom with ye. Body of
|
||
|
me! ye have mair music in your sporran than I have in my head!
|
||
|
And though it still sticks in my mind that I could maybe show ye
|
||
|
another of it with the cold steel, I warn ye beforehand -- it'll
|
||
|
no be fair! It would go against my heart to haggle a man that
|
||
|
can blow the pipes as you can!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thereupon that quarrel was made up; all night long the
|
||
|
brose was going and the pipes changing hands; and the day had
|
||
|
come pretty bright, and the three men were none the better for
|
||
|
what they had been taking, before Robin as much as thought upon
|
||
|
the road.
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] Commercial traveller.
|
||
|
[2] Rumour.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXVI
|
||
|
END OF THE FLIGHT: WE PASS THE FORTH
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE month, as I have said, was not yet out, but it was already
|
||
|
far through August, and beautiful warm weather, with every sign
|
||
|
of an early and great harvest, when I was pronounced able for my
|
||
|
journey. Our money was now run to so low an ebb that we must
|
||
|
think first of all on speed; for if we came not soon to Mr.
|
||
|
Rankeillor's, or if when we came there he should fail to help
|
||
|
me, we must surely starve. In Alan's view, besides, the hunt
|
||
|
must have now greatly slackened; and the line of the Forth and
|
||
|
even Stirling Bridge, which is the main pass over that river,
|
||
|
would be watched with little interest.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's a chief principle in military affairs," said he, "to
|
||
|
go where ye are least expected. Forth is our trouble; ye ken the
|
||
|
saying, 'Forth bridles the wild Hielandman.' Well, if we seek to
|
||
|
creep round about the head of that river and come down by Kippen
|
||
|
or Balfron, it's just precisely there that they'll be looking to
|
||
|
lay hands on us. But if we stave on straight to the auld Brig of
|
||
|
Stirling, I'll lay my sword they let us pass unchallenged."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The first night, accordingly, we pushed to the house of a
|
||
|
Maclaren in Strathire, a friend of Duncan's, where we slept the
|
||
|
twenty-first of the month, and whence we set forth again about
|
||
|
the fall of night to make another easy stage. The twenty-second
|
||
|
we lay in a heather bush on the hillside in Uam Var, within view
|
||
|
of a herd of deer, the happiest ten hours of sleep in a fine,
|
||
|
breathing sunshine and on bone-dry ground, that I have ever
|
||
|
tasted. That night we struck Allan Water, and followed it down;
|
||
|
and coming to the edge of the hills saw the whole Carse of
|
||
|
Stirling underfoot, as flat as a pancake, with the town and
|
||
|
castle on a hill in the midst of it, and the moon shining on the
|
||
|
Links of Forth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now," said Alan, "I kenna if ye care, but ye're in your
|
||
|
own land again. We passed the Hieland Line in the first hour;
|
||
|
and now if we could but pass yon crooked water, we might cast
|
||
|
our bonnets in the air."
|
||
|
|
||
|
In Allan Water, near by where it falls into the Forth, we
|
||
|
found a little sandy islet, overgrown with burdock, butterbur
|
||
|
and the like low plants, that would just cover us if we lay
|
||
|
flat. Here it was we made our camp, within plain view of
|
||
|
Stirling Castle, whence we could hear the drums beat as some
|
||
|
part of the garrison paraded. Shearers worked all day in a field
|
||
|
on one side of the river, and we could hear the stones going on
|
||
|
the hooks and the voices and even the words of the men talking.
|
||
|
It behoved to lie close and keep silent. But the sand of the
|
||
|
little isle was sun-warm, the green plants gave us shelter for
|
||
|
our heads, we had food and drink in plenty; and to crown all, we
|
||
|
were within sight of safety.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As soon as the shearers quit their work and the dusk began
|
||
|
to fall, we waded ashore and struck for the Bridge of Stirling,
|
||
|
keeping to the fields and under the field fences.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The bridge is close under the castle hill, an old, high,
|
||
|
narrow bridge with pinnacles along the parapet; and you may
|
||
|
conceive with how much interest I looked upon it, not only as a
|
||
|
place famous in history, but as the very doors of salvation to
|
||
|
Alan and myself. The moon was not yet up when we came there; a
|
||
|
few lights shone along the front of the fortress, and lower down
|
||
|
a few lighted windows in the town; but it was all mighty still,
|
||
|
and there seemed to be no guard upon the passage.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was for pushing straight across; but Alan was more wary.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It looks unco' quiet," said he; "but for all that we'll
|
||
|
lie down here cannily behind a dyke, and make sure."
|
||
|
|
||
|
So we lay for about a quarter of an hour, whiles
|
||
|
whispering, whiles lying still and hearing nothing earthly but
|
||
|
the washing of the water on the piers. At last there came by an
|
||
|
old, hobbling woman with a crutch stick; who first stopped a
|
||
|
little, close to where we lay, and bemoaned herself and the long
|
||
|
way she had travelled; and then set forth again up the steep
|
||
|
spring of the bridge. The woman was so little, and the night
|
||
|
still so dark, that we soon lost sight of her; only heard the
|
||
|
sound of her steps, and her stick, and a cough that she had by
|
||
|
fits, draw slowly farther away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She's bound to be across now," I whispered.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Na," said Alan, "her foot still sounds boss[1] upon the
|
||
|
bridge."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And just then -- "Who goes?" cried a voice, and we heard
|
||
|
the butt of a musket rattle on the stones. I must suppose the
|
||
|
sentry had been sleeping, so that had we tried, we might have
|
||
|
passed unseen; but he was awake now, and the chance forfeited.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This'll never do," said Alan. "This'll never, never do for
|
||
|
us, David."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And without another word, he began to crawl away through
|
||
|
the fields; and a little after, being well out of eye-shot, got
|
||
|
to his feet again, and struck along a road that led to the
|
||
|
eastward. I could not conceive what he was doing; and indeed I
|
||
|
was so sharply cut by the disappointment, that I was little
|
||
|
likely to be pleased with anything. A moment back and I had seen
|
||
|
myself knocking at Mr. Rankeillor's door to claim my
|
||
|
inheritance, like a hero in a ballad; and here was I back again,
|
||
|
a wandering, hunted blackguard, on the wrong side of Forth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well?" said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," said Alan, "what would ye have? They're none such
|
||
|
fools as I took them for. We have still the Forth to pass, Davie
|
||
|
-- weary fall the rains that fed and the hillsides that guided
|
||
|
it!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And why go east?" said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ou, just upon the chance!" said he. "If we cannae pass the
|
||
|
river, we'll have to see what we can do for the firth."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There are fords upon the river, and none upon the firth,"
|
||
|
said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To be sure there are fords, and a bridge forbye," quoth
|
||
|
Alan; "and of what service, when they are watched?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," said I, "but a river can be swum."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"By them that have the skill of it," returned he; "but I
|
||
|
have yet to hear that either you or me is much of a hand at that
|
||
|
exercise; and for my own part, I swim like a stone."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I'm not up to you in talking back, Alan," I said; "but I
|
||
|
can see we're making bad worse. If it's hard to pass a river, it
|
||
|
stands to reason it must be worse to pass a sea."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But there's such a thing as a boat," says Alan, "or I'm
|
||
|
the more deceived."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay, and such a thing as money," says I. "But for us that
|
||
|
have neither one nor other, they might just as well not have
|
||
|
been invented."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye think so?" said Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do that," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"David," says he, "ye're a man of small invention and less
|
||
|
faith. But let me set my wits upon the hone, and if I cannae
|
||
|
beg, borrow, nor yet steal a boat, I'll make one!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I think I see ye!" said I. "And what's more than all that:
|
||
|
if ye pass a bridge, it can tell no tales; but if we pass the
|
||
|
firth, there's the boat on the wrong side -- somebody must have
|
||
|
brought it -- the country-side will all be in a bizz"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Man!" cried Alan, "if I make a boat, I'll make a body to
|
||
|
take it back again! So deave me with no more of your nonsense,
|
||
|
but walk (for that's what you've got to do) --and let Alan think
|
||
|
for ye."
|
||
|
|
||
|
All night, then, we walked through the north side of the
|
||
|
Carse under the high line of the Ochil mountains; and by Alloa
|
||
|
and Clackmannan and Culross, all of which we avoided: and about
|
||
|
ten in the morning, mighty hungry and tired, came to the little
|
||
|
clachan of Limekilns. This is a place that sits near in by the
|
||
|
water-side, and looks across the Hope to the town of the
|
||
|
Queensferry. Smoke went up from both of these, and from other
|
||
|
villages and farms upon all hands. The fields were being reaped;
|
||
|
two ships lay anchored, and boats were coming and going on the
|
||
|
Hope. It was altogether a right pleasant sight to me; and I
|
||
|
could not take my fill of gazing at these comfortable, green,
|
||
|
cultivated hills and the busy people both of the field and sea.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For all that, there was Mr. Rankeillor's house on the south
|
||
|
shore, where I had no doubt wealth awaited me; and here was I
|
||
|
upon the north, clad in poor enough attire of an outlandish
|
||
|
fashion, with three silver shillings left to me of all my
|
||
|
fortune, a price set upon my head, and an outlawed man for my
|
||
|
sole company.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"O, Alan!" said I, "to think of it! Over there, there's all
|
||
|
that heart could want waiting me; and the birds go over, and the
|
||
|
boats go over -- all that please can go, but just me only! O,
|
||
|
man, but it's a heart-break!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
In Limekilns we entered a small change-house, which we only
|
||
|
knew to be a public by the wand over the door, and bought some
|
||
|
bread and cheese from a good-looking lass that was the servant.
|
||
|
This we carried with us in a bundle, meaning to sit and eat it
|
||
|
in a bush of wood on the sea-shore, that we saw some third part
|
||
|
of a mile in front. As we went, I kept looking across the water
|
||
|
and sighing to myself; and though I took no heed of it, Alan had
|
||
|
fallen into a muse. At last he stopped in the way."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Did ye take heed of the lass we bought this of?" says he,
|
||
|
tapping on the bread and cheese.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To be sure," said I, "and a bonny lass she was."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye thought that?" cries he. "Man, David, that's good
|
||
|
news."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In the name of all that's wonderful, why so?" says I.
|
||
|
"What good can that do?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," said Alan, with one of his droll looks, "I was
|
||
|
rather in hopes it would maybe get us that boat."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If it were the other way about, it would be liker it,"
|
||
|
said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That's all that you ken, ye see," said Alan. "I don't want
|
||
|
the lass to fall in love with ye, I want her to be sorry for ye,
|
||
|
David; to which end there is no manner of need that she should
|
||
|
take you for a beauty. Let me see" (looking me curiously over).
|
||
|
"I wish ye were a wee thing paler; but apart from that ye'll do
|
||
|
fine for my purpose -- ye have a fine, hang-dog, rag-and-tatter,
|
||
|
clappermaclaw kind of a look to ye, as if ye had stolen the coat
|
||
|
from a potato-bogle. Come; right about, and back to the
|
||
|
change-house for that boat of ours."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I followed him, laughing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"David Balfour," said he, "ye're a very funny gentleman by
|
||
|
your way of it, and this is a very funny employ for ye, no
|
||
|
doubt. For all that, if ye have any affection for my neck (to
|
||
|
say nothing of your own) ye will perhaps be kind enough to take
|
||
|
this matter responsibly. I am going to do a bit of play-acting,
|
||
|
the bottom ground of which is just exactly as serious as the
|
||
|
gallows for the pair of us. So bear it, if ye please, in mind,
|
||
|
and conduct yourself according."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, well," said I, "have it as you will."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As we got near the clachan, he made me take his arm and
|
||
|
hang upon it like one almost helpless with weariness; and by the
|
||
|
time he pushed open the change-house door, he seemed to be half
|
||
|
carrying me. The maid appeared surprised (as well she might be)
|
||
|
at our speedy return; but Alan had no words to spare for her in
|
||
|
explanation, helped me to a chair, called for a tass of brandy
|
||
|
with which he fed me in little sips, and then breaking up the
|
||
|
bread and cheese helped me to eat it like a nursery-lass; the
|
||
|
whole with that grave, concerned, affectionate countenance, that
|
||
|
might have imposed upon a judge. It was small wonder if the maid
|
||
|
were taken with the picture we presented, of a poor, sick,
|
||
|
overwrought lad and his most tender comrade. She drew quite
|
||
|
near, and stood leaning with her back on the next table.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What's like wrong with him?" said she at last.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Alan turned upon her, to my great wonder, with a kind of
|
||
|
fury. "Wrong?" cries he. "He's walked more hundreds of miles
|
||
|
than he has hairs upon his chin, and slept oftener in wet
|
||
|
heather than dry sheets. Wrong, quo' she! Wrong enough, I would
|
||
|
think! Wrong, indeed!" and he kept grumbling to himself as he
|
||
|
fed me, like a man ill-pleased"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He's young for the like of that," said the maid.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ower young," said Alan, with his back to her."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He would be better riding," says she.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And where could I get a horse to him?" cried Alan, turning
|
||
|
on her with the same appearance of fury. "Would ye have me
|
||
|
steal?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
I thought this roughness would have sent her off in
|
||
|
dudgeon, as indeed it closed her mouth for the time. But my
|
||
|
companion knew very well what he was doing; and for as simple as
|
||
|
he was in some things of life, had a great fund of roguishness
|
||
|
in such affairs as these.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye neednae tell me," she said at last -- "ye're gentry."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," said Alan, softened a little (I believe against his
|
||
|
will) by this artless comment, "and suppose we were? Did ever
|
||
|
you hear that gentrice put money in folk's pockets?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
She sighed at this, as if she were herself some
|
||
|
disinherited great lady. "No," says she, "that's true indeed."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was all this while chafing at the part I played, and
|
||
|
sitting tongue-tied between shame and merriment; but somehow at
|
||
|
this I could hold in no longer, and bade Alan let me be, for I
|
||
|
was better already. My voice stuck in my throat, for I ever
|
||
|
hated to take part in lies; but my very embarrassment helped on
|
||
|
the plot, for the lass no doubt set down my husky voice to
|
||
|
sickness and fatigue.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Has he nae friends?" said she, in a tearful voice.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That has he so!" cried Alan, "if we could but win to them!
|
||
|
-- friends and rich friends, beds to lie in, food to eat,
|
||
|
doctors to see to him -- and here he must tramp in the dubs and
|
||
|
sleep in the heather like a beggarman."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And why that?" says the lass.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear," said Alan, "I cannae very safely say; but I'll
|
||
|
tell ye what I'll do instead," says he, "I'll whistle ye a bit
|
||
|
tune." And with that he leaned pretty far over the table, and in
|
||
|
a mere breath of a whistle, but with a wonderful pretty
|
||
|
sentiment, gave her a few bars of "Charlie is my darling."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Wheesht," says she, and looked over her shoulder to the
|
||
|
door.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That's it," said Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And him so young!" cries the lass.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He's old enough to----" and Alan struck his forefinger on
|
||
|
the back part of his neck, meaning that I was old enough to lose
|
||
|
my head.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It would be a black shame," she cried, flushing high.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's what will be, though," said Alan, "unless we manage
|
||
|
the better."
|
||
|
|
||
|
At this the lass turned and ran out of that part of the
|
||
|
house, leaving us alone together. Alan in high good humour at
|
||
|
the furthering of his schemes, and I in bitter dudgeon at being
|
||
|
called a Jacobite and treated like a child.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Alan," I cried, "I can stand no more of this."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye'll have to sit it then, Davie," said he. "For if ye
|
||
|
upset the pot now, ye may scrape your own life out of the fire,
|
||
|
but Alan Breck is a dead man."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was so true that I could only groan; and even my groan
|
||
|
served Alan's purpose, for it was overheard by the lass as she
|
||
|
came flying in again with a dish of white puddings and a bottle
|
||
|
of strong ale.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Poor lamb!" says she, and had no sooner set the meat
|
||
|
before us, than she touched me on the shoulder with a little
|
||
|
friendly touch, as much as to bid me cheer up. Then she told us
|
||
|
to fall to, and there would be no more to pay; for the inn was
|
||
|
her own, or at least her father's, and he was gone for the day
|
||
|
to Pittencrieff. We waited for no second bidding, for bread and
|
||
|
cheese is but cold comfort and the puddings smelt excellently
|
||
|
well; and while we sat and ate, she took up that same place by
|
||
|
the next table, looking on, and thinking, and frowning to
|
||
|
herself, and drawing the string of her apron through her hand.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I'm thinking ye have rather a long tongue," she said at
|
||
|
last to Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay" said Alan; "but ye see I ken the folk I speak to."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I would never betray ye," said she, "if ye mean that."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No," said he, "ye're not that kind. But I'll tell ye what
|
||
|
ye would do, ye would help."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I couldnae," said she, shaking her head. "Na, I couldnae."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No," said he, "but if ye could?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
She answered him nothing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Look here, my lass," said Alan, "there are boats in the
|
||
|
Kingdom of Fife, for I saw two (no less) upon the beach, as I
|
||
|
came in by your town's end. Now if we could have the use of a
|
||
|
boat to pass under cloud of night into Lothian, and some secret,
|
||
|
decent kind of a man to bring that boat back again and keep his
|
||
|
counsel, there would be two souls saved -- mine to all
|
||
|
likelihood -- his to a dead surety. If we lack that boat, we
|
||
|
have but three shillings left in this wide world; and where to
|
||
|
go, and how to do, and what other place there is for us except
|
||
|
the chains of a gibbet -- I give you my naked word, I kenna!
|
||
|
Shall we go wanting, lassie? Are ye to lie in your warm bed and
|
||
|
think upon us, when the wind gowls in the chimney and the rain
|
||
|
tirls on the roof? Are ye to eat your meat by the cheeks of a
|
||
|
red fire, and think upon this poor sick lad of mine, biting his
|
||
|
finger ends on a blae muir for cauld and hunger? Sick or sound,
|
||
|
he must aye be moving; with the death grapple at his throat he
|
||
|
must aye be trailing in the rain on the lang roads; and when he
|
||
|
gants his last on a rickle of cauld stanes, there will be nae
|
||
|
friends near him but only me and God."
|
||
|
|
||
|
At this appeal, I could see the lass was in great trouble
|
||
|
of mind, being tempted to help us, and yet in some fear she
|
||
|
might be helping malefactors; and so now I determined to step in
|
||
|
myself and to allay her scruples with a portion of the truth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Did ever you, hear" said I, "of Mr. Rankeillor of the
|
||
|
Ferry?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Rankeillor the writer?" said she. " daur say that!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," said I, "it's to his door that I am bound, so you
|
||
|
may judge by that if I am an ill-doer; and I will tell you more,
|
||
|
that though I am indeed, by a dreadful error, in some peril of
|
||
|
my life, King George has no truer friend in all Scotland than
|
||
|
myself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her face cleared up mightily at this, although Alan's
|
||
|
darkened.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That's more than I would ask," said she. "Mr. Rankeillor
|
||
|
is a kennt man." And she bade us finish our meat, get clear of
|
||
|
the clachan as soon as might be, and lie close in the bit wood
|
||
|
on the sea-beach. "And ye can trust me," says she, "I'll find
|
||
|
some means to put you over."
|
||
|
|
||
|
At this we waited for no more, but shook hands with her
|
||
|
upon the bargain, made short work of the puddings, and set forth
|
||
|
again from Limekilns as far as to the wood. It was a small piece
|
||
|
of perhaps a score of elders and hawthorns and a few young
|
||
|
ashes, not thick enough to veil us from passersby upon the road
|
||
|
or beach. Here we must lie, however, making the best of the
|
||
|
brave warm weather and the good hopes we now had of a
|
||
|
deliverance, and planing more particularly what remained for us
|
||
|
to do.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We had but one trouble all day; when a strolling piper came
|
||
|
and sat in the same wood with us; a red-nosed, bleareyed,
|
||
|
drunken dog, with a great bottle of whisky in his pocket, and a
|
||
|
long story of wrongs that had been done him by all sorts of
|
||
|
persons, from the Lord President of the Court of Session, who
|
||
|
had denied him justice, down to the Bailies of Inverkeithing who
|
||
|
had given him more of it than he desired. It was impossible but
|
||
|
he should conceive some suspicion of two men lying all day
|
||
|
concealed in a thicket and having no business to allege. As long
|
||
|
as he stayed there he kept us in hot water with prying
|
||
|
questions; and after he was gone, as he was a man not very
|
||
|
likely to hold his tongue, we were in the greater impatience to
|
||
|
be gone ourselves.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The day came to an end with the same brightness; the night
|
||
|
fell quiet and clear; lights came out in houses and hamlets and
|
||
|
then, one after another, began to be put out; but it was past
|
||
|
eleven, and we were long since strangely tortured with
|
||
|
anxieties, before we heard the grinding of oars upon the
|
||
|
rowing-pins. At that, we looked out and saw the lass herself
|
||
|
coming rowing to us in a boat. She had trusted no one with our
|
||
|
affairs, not even her sweetheart, if she had one; but as soon as
|
||
|
her father was asleep, had left the house by a window, stolen a
|
||
|
neighbour's boat, and come to our assistance single-handed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was abashed how to find expression for my thanks; but she
|
||
|
was no less abashed at the thought of hearing them; begged us to
|
||
|
lose no time and to hold our peace, saying (very properly) that
|
||
|
the heart of our matter was in haste and silence; and so, what
|
||
|
with one thing and another, she had set us on the Lothian shore
|
||
|
not far from Carriden, had shaken hands with us, and was out
|
||
|
again at sea and rowing for Limekilns, before there was one word
|
||
|
said either of her service or our gratitude.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Even after she was gone, we had nothing to say, as indeed
|
||
|
nothing was enough for such a kindness. Only Alan stood a great
|
||
|
while upon the shore shaking his head.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is a very fine lass," he said at last. "David, it is a
|
||
|
very fine lass." And a matter of an hour later, as we were lying
|
||
|
in a den on the sea-shore and I had been already dozing, he
|
||
|
broke out again in commendations of her character. For my part,
|
||
|
I could say nothing, she was so simple a creature that my heart
|
||
|
smote me both with remorse and fear: remorse because we had
|
||
|
traded upon her ignorance; and fear lest we should have anyway
|
||
|
involved her in the dangers of our situation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] Hollow.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXVII
|
||
|
I COME TO MR. RANKEILLOR
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE next day it was agreed that Alan should fend for himself
|
||
|
till sunset; but as soon as it began to grow dark, he should lie
|
||
|
in the fields by the roadside near to Newhalls, and stir for
|
||
|
naught until he heard me whistling. At first I proposed I should
|
||
|
give him for a signal the "Bonnie House of Airlie," which was a
|
||
|
favourite of mine; but he objected that as the piece was very
|
||
|
commonly known, any ploughman might whistle it by accident; and
|
||
|
taught me instead a little fragment of a Highland air, which has
|
||
|
run in my head from that day to this, and will likely run in my
|
||
|
head when I lie dying. Every time it comes to me, it takes me
|
||
|
off to that last day of my uncertainty, with Alan sitting up in
|
||
|
the bottom of the den, whistling and beating the measure with a
|
||
|
finger, and the grey of the dawn coming on his face.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was in the long street of Queensferry before the sun was
|
||
|
up. It was a fairly built burgh, the houses of good stone, many
|
||
|
slated; the town-hall not so fine, I thought, as that of
|
||
|
Peebles, nor yet the street so noble; but take it altogether, it
|
||
|
put me to shame for my foul tatters.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As the morning went on, and the fires began to be kindled,
|
||
|
and the windows to open, and the people to appear out of the
|
||
|
houses, my concern and despondency grew ever the blacker. I saw
|
||
|
now that I had no grounds to stand upon; and no clear proof of
|
||
|
my rights, nor so much as of my own identity. If it was all a
|
||
|
bubble, I was indeed sorely cheated and left in a sore pass.
|
||
|
Even if things were as I conceived, it would in all likelihood
|
||
|
take time to establish my contentions; and what time had I to
|
||
|
spare with less than three shillings in my pocket, and a
|
||
|
condemned, hunted man upon my hands to ship out of the country?
|
||
|
Truly, if my hope broke with me, it might come to the gallows
|
||
|
yet for both of us. And as I continued to walk up and down, and
|
||
|
saw people looking askance at me upon the street or out of
|
||
|
windows, and nudging or speaking one to another with smiles, I
|
||
|
began to take a fresh apprehension: that it might be no easy
|
||
|
matter even to come to speech of the lawyer, far less to
|
||
|
convince him of my story.
|
||
|
|
||
|
For the life of me I could not muster up the courage to
|
||
|
address any of these reputable burghers; I thought shame even to
|
||
|
speak with them in such a pickle of rags and dirt; and if I had
|
||
|
asked for the house of such a man as Mr. Rankeillor, I suppose
|
||
|
they would have burst out laughing in my face. So I went up and
|
||
|
down, and through the street, and down to the harbour-side, like
|
||
|
a dog that has lost its master, with a strange gnawing in my
|
||
|
inwards, and every now and then a movement of despair. It grew
|
||
|
to be high day at last, perhaps nine in the forenoon; and I was
|
||
|
worn with these wanderings, and chanced to have stopped in front
|
||
|
of a very good house on the landward side, a house with
|
||
|
beautiful, clear glass windows, flowering knots upon the sills,
|
||
|
the walls new-harled[1] and a chase-dog sitting yawning on the
|
||
|
step like one that was at home. Well, I was even envying this
|
||
|
dumb brute, when the door fell open and there issued forth a
|
||
|
shrewd, ruddy, kindly, consequential man in a well-powdered wig
|
||
|
and spectacles. I was in such a plight that no one set eyes on
|
||
|
me once, but he looked at me again; and this gentleman, as it
|
||
|
proved, was so much struck with my poor appearance that he came
|
||
|
straight up to me and asked me what I did.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I told him I was come to the Queensferry on business, and
|
||
|
taking heart of grace, asked him to direct me to the house of
|
||
|
Mr. Rankeillor.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why," said he, "that is his house that I have just come
|
||
|
out of; and for a rather singular chance, I am that very man."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then, sir," said I, "I have to beg the favour of an
|
||
|
interview."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not know your name," said he, "nor yet your face."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My name is David Balfour," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"David Balfour?" he repeated, in rather a high tone, like
|
||
|
one surprised. "And where have you come from, Mr. David
|
||
|
Balfour?" he asked, looking me pretty drily in the face.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have come from a great many strange places, sir," said
|
||
|
I; "but I think it would be as well to tell you where and how in
|
||
|
a more private manner."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He seemed to muse awhile, holding his lip in his hand, and
|
||
|
looking now at me and now upon the causeway of the street.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes," says he, "that will be the best, no doubt." And he
|
||
|
led me back with him into his house, cried out to some one whom
|
||
|
I could not see that he would be engaged all morning, and
|
||
|
brought me into a little dusty chamber full of books and
|
||
|
documents. Here he sate down, and bade me be seated; though I
|
||
|
thought he looked a little ruefully from his clean chair to my
|
||
|
muddy rags. "And now," says he, "if you have any business, pray
|
||
|
be brief and come swiftly to the point. Nec gemino bellum
|
||
|
Trojanum orditur ab ovo --do you understand that?" says he, with
|
||
|
a keen look.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I will even do as Horace says, sir," I answered, smiling,
|
||
|
"and carry you in medias res." He nodded as if he was well
|
||
|
pleased, and indeed his scrap of Latin had been set to test me.
|
||
|
For all that, and though I was somewhat encouraged, the blood
|
||
|
came in my face when I added: "I have reason to believe myself
|
||
|
some rights on the estate of Shaws."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He got a paper book out of a drawer and set it before him
|
||
|
open. "Well?" said he.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But I had shot my bolt and sat speechless.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come, come, Mr. Balfour," said he, "you must continue.
|
||
|
Where were you born?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In Essendean, sir," said I, "the year 1733, the 12th of
|
||
|
March."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He seemed to follow this statement in his paper book; but
|
||
|
what that meant I knew not. "Your father and mother?" said he.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My father was Alexander Balfour, schoolmaster of that
|
||
|
place," said I, "and my mother Grace Pitarrow; I think her
|
||
|
people were from Angus."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Have you any papers proving your identity?" asked Mr.
|
||
|
Rankeillor.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, sir," said I, "but they are in the hands of Mr.
|
||
|
Campbell, the minister, and could be readily produced. Mr.
|
||
|
Campbell, too, would give me his word; and for that matter, I do
|
||
|
not think my uncle would deny me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Meaning Mr. Ebenezer Balfour?" says he.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The same," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Whom you have seen?" he asked.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"By whom I was received into his own house," I answered.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Did you ever meet a man of the name of Hoseason?" asked
|
||
|
Mr. Rankeillor.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I did so, sir, for my sins," said I; "for it was by his
|
||
|
means and the procurement of my uncle, that I was kidnapped
|
||
|
within sight of this town, carried to sea, suffered shipwreck
|
||
|
and a hundred other hardships, and stand before you to-day in
|
||
|
this poor accoutrement."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You say you were shipwrecked," said Rankeillor; "where was
|
||
|
that?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Off the south end of the Isle of Mull," said I. "The name
|
||
|
of the isle on which I was cast up is the Island Earraid."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah!" says he, smiling, "you are deeper than me in the
|
||
|
geography. But so far, I may tell you, this agrees pretty
|
||
|
exactly with other informations that I hold. But you say you
|
||
|
were kidnapped; in what sense?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In the plain meaning of the word, sir," said I. "I was on
|
||
|
my way to your house, when I was trepanned on board the brig,
|
||
|
cruelly struck down, thrown below, and knew no more of anything
|
||
|
till we were far at sea. I was destined for the plantations; a
|
||
|
fate that, in God's providence, I have escaped."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The brig was lost on June the 27th," says he, looking in
|
||
|
his book," and we are now at August the 24th. Here is a
|
||
|
considerable hiatus, Mr. Balfour, of near upon two months. It
|
||
|
has already caused a vast amount of trouble to your friends; and
|
||
|
I own I shall not be very well contented until it is set right."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed, sir," said I, "these months are very easily filled
|
||
|
up; but yet before I told my story, I would be glad to know that
|
||
|
I was talking to a friend."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This is to argue in a circle," said the lawyer. "I cannot
|
||
|
be convinced till I have heard you. I cannot be your friend till
|
||
|
I am properly informed. If you were more trustful, it would
|
||
|
better befit your time of life. And you know, Mr. Balfour, we
|
||
|
have a proverb in the country that evil-doers are aye
|
||
|
evil-dreaders."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are not to forget, sir," said I, "that I have already
|
||
|
suffered by my trustfulness; and was shipped off to be a slave
|
||
|
by the very man that (if I rightly understand) is your
|
||
|
employer?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
All this while I had been gaining ground with Mr.
|
||
|
Rankeillor, and in proportion as I gained ground, gaining
|
||
|
confidence. But at this sally, which I made with something of a
|
||
|
smile myself, he fairly laughed aloud.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, no," said he, "it is not so bad as that. Fui, non sum.
|
||
|
I was indeed your uncle's man of business; but while you
|
||
|
(imberbis juvenis custode remoto) were gallivanting in the west,
|
||
|
a good deal of water has run under the bridges; and if your ears
|
||
|
did not sing, it was not for lack of being talked about. On the
|
||
|
very day of your sea disaster, Mr. Campbell stalked into my
|
||
|
office, demanding you from all the winds. I had never heard of
|
||
|
your existence; but I had known your father; and from matters in
|
||
|
my competence (to be touched upon hereafter) I was disposed to
|
||
|
fear the worst. Mr. Ebenezer admitted having seen you; declared
|
||
|
(what seemed improbable) that he had given you considerable
|
||
|
sums; and that you had started for the continent of Europe,
|
||
|
intending to fulfil your education, which was probable and
|
||
|
praiseworthy. Interrogated how you had come to send no word to
|
||
|
Mr. Campbell, he deponed that you had expressed a great desire
|
||
|
to break with your past life. Further interrogated where you now
|
||
|
were, protested ignorance, but believed you were in Leyden. That
|
||
|
is a close sum of his replies. I am not exactly sure that any
|
||
|
one believed him," continued Mr. Rankeillor with a smile; "and
|
||
|
in particular he so much disrelished me expressions of mine that
|
||
|
(in a word) he showed me to the door. We were then at a full
|
||
|
stand; for whatever shrewd suspicions we might entertain, we had
|
||
|
no shadow of probation. In the very article, comes Captain
|
||
|
Hoseason with the story of your drowning; whereupon all fell
|
||
|
through; with no consequences but concern to Mr. Campbell,
|
||
|
injury to my pocket, and another blot upon your uncle's
|
||
|
character, which could very ill afford it. And now, Mr.
|
||
|
Balfour," said he, "you understand the whole process of these
|
||
|
matters, and can judge for yourself to what extent I may be
|
||
|
trusted."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Indeed he was more pedantic than I can represent him, and
|
||
|
placed more scraps of Latin in his speech; but it was all
|
||
|
uttered with a fine geniality of eye and manner which went far
|
||
|
to conquer my distrust. Moreover, I could see he now treated me
|
||
|
as if I was myself beyond a doubt; so that first point of my
|
||
|
identity seemed fully granted.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sir," said I, "if I tell you my story, I must commit a
|
||
|
friend's life to your discretion. Pass me your word it shall be
|
||
|
sacred; and for what touches myself, I will ask no better
|
||
|
guarantee than just your face."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He passed me his word very seriously. "But," said he,
|
||
|
"these are rather alarming prolocutions; and if there are in
|
||
|
your story any little jostles to the law, I would beg you to
|
||
|
bear in mind that I am a lawyer, and pass lightly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thereupon I told him my story from the first, he listening
|
||
|
with his spectacles thrust up and his eyes closed, so that I
|
||
|
sometimes feared he was asleep. But no such matter! he heard
|
||
|
every word (as I found afterward) with such quickness of hearing
|
||
|
and precision of memory as often surprised me. Even strange
|
||
|
outlandish Gaelic names, heard for that time only, he remembered
|
||
|
and would remind me of, years after. Yet when I called Alan
|
||
|
Breck in full, we had an odd scene. The name of Alan had of
|
||
|
course rung through Scotland, with the news of the Appin murder
|
||
|
and the offer of the reward; and it had no sooner escaped me
|
||
|
than the lawyer moved in his seat and opened his eyes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I would name no unneccssary names, Mr. Balfour," said he;
|
||
|
"above all of Highlanders, many of whom are obnoxious to the
|
||
|
law."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, it might have been better not," said I, "but since
|
||
|
I have let it slip, I may as well continue."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not at all," said Mr. Rankeillor. "I am somewhat dull of
|
||
|
hearing, as you may have remarked; and I am far from sure I
|
||
|
caught the name exactly. We will call your friend, if you
|
||
|
please, Mr. Thomson -- that there may be no reflections. And in
|
||
|
future, I would take some such way with any Highlander that you
|
||
|
may have to mention -- dead or alive."
|
||
|
|
||
|
By this, I saw he must have heard the name all too clearly,
|
||
|
and had already guessed I might be coming to the murder. If he
|
||
|
chose to play this part of ignorance, it was no matter of mine;
|
||
|
so I smiled, said it was no very Highland-sounding name, and
|
||
|
consented. Through all the rest of my story Alan was Mr.
|
||
|
Thomson; which amused me the more, as it was a piece of policy
|
||
|
after his own heart. James Stewart, in like manner, was
|
||
|
mentioned under the style of Mr. Thomson's kinsman; Colin
|
||
|
Campbell passed as a Mr. Glen; and to Cluny, when I came to that
|
||
|
part of my tale, I gave the name of "Mr. Jameson, a Highland
|
||
|
chief." It was truly the most open farce, and I wondered that
|
||
|
the lawyer should care to keep it up; but, after all, it was
|
||
|
quite in the taste of that age, when there were two parties in
|
||
|
the state, and quiet persons, with no very high opinions of
|
||
|
their own, sought out every Cranny to avoid offence to either.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, well," said the lawyer, when I had quite done, "this
|
||
|
is a great epic, a great Odyssey of yours. You must tell it,
|
||
|
sir, in a sound Latinity when your scholarship is riper; or in
|
||
|
English if you please, though for my part I prefer the stronger
|
||
|
tongue. You have rolled much; quae regio in terris -- what
|
||
|
parish in Scotland (to make a homely translation) has not been
|
||
|
filled with your wanderings? You have shown, besides, a singular
|
||
|
aptitude for getting into false positions; and, yes, upon the
|
||
|
whole, for behaving well in them. This Mr. Thomson seems to me
|
||
|
a gentleman of some choice qualities, though perhaps a trifle
|
||
|
bloody-minded. It would please me none the worse, if (with all
|
||
|
his merits) he were soused in the North Sea, for the man, Mr.
|
||
|
David, is a sore embarrassment. But you are doubtless quite
|
||
|
right to adhere to him; indubitably, he adhered to you. It comes
|
||
|
-- we may say -- he was your true companion; nor less paribus
|
||
|
curis vestigia figit, for I dare say you would both take an orra
|
||
|
thought upon the gallows. Well, well, these days are
|
||
|
fortunately, by; and I think (speaking humanly) that you are
|
||
|
near the end of your troubles."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As he thus moralised on my adventures, he looked upon me
|
||
|
with so much humour and benignity that I could scarce contain my
|
||
|
satisfaction. I had been so long wandering with lawless people,
|
||
|
and making my bed upon the hills and under the bare sky, that to
|
||
|
sit once more in a clean, covered house, and to talk amicably
|
||
|
with a gentleman in broadcloth, seemed mighty elevations. Even
|
||
|
as I thought so, my eye fell on my unseemly tatters, and I was
|
||
|
once more plunged in confusion. But the lawyer saw and
|
||
|
understood me. He rose, called over the stair to lay another
|
||
|
plate, for Mr. Balfour would stay to dinner, and led me into a
|
||
|
bedroom in the upper part of the house. Here he set before me
|
||
|
water and soap, and a comb; and laid out some clothes that
|
||
|
belonged to his son; and here, with another apposite tag, he
|
||
|
left me to my toilet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] Newly rough-cast.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXVIII
|
||
|
I GO IN QUEST OF MY INHERITANCE
|
||
|
|
||
|
I MADE what change I could in my appearance; and blithe was I to
|
||
|
look in the glass and find the beggarman a thing of the past,
|
||
|
and David Balfour come to life again. And yet I was ashamed of
|
||
|
the change too, and, above all, of the borrowed clothes. When I
|
||
|
had done, Mr. Rankeillor caught me on the stair, made me his
|
||
|
compliments, and had me again into the cabinet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sit ye down, Mr. David," said he, "and now that you are
|
||
|
looking a little more like yourself, let me see if I can find
|
||
|
you any news. You will be wondering, no doubt, about your father
|
||
|
and your uncle? To be sure it is a singular tale; and the
|
||
|
explanation is one that I blush to have to offer you. For," says
|
||
|
he, really with embarrassment, "the matter hinges on a love
|
||
|
affair."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Truly," said I, "I cannot very well join that notion with
|
||
|
my uncle."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But your uncle, Mr. David, was not always old," replied
|
||
|
the lawyer, "and what may perhaps surprise you more, not always
|
||
|
ugly. He had a fine, gallant air; people stood in their doors to
|
||
|
look after him, as he went by upon a mettle horse. I have seen
|
||
|
it with these eyes, and I ingenuously confess, not altogether
|
||
|
without envy; for I was a plain lad myself and a plain man's
|
||
|
son; and in those days it was a case of Odi te, qui bellus es,
|
||
|
Sabelle."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It sounds like a dream," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay, ay," said the lawyer, "that is how it is with youth
|
||
|
and age. Nor was that all, but he had a spirit of his own that
|
||
|
seemed to promise great things in the future. In 1715, what must
|
||
|
he do but run away to join the rebels? It was your father that
|
||
|
pursued him, found him in a ditch, and brought him back multum
|
||
|
gementem; to the mirth of the whole country. However, majora
|
||
|
canamus -- the two lads fell in love, and that with the same
|
||
|
lady. Mr. Ebenezer, who was the admired and the beloved, and the
|
||
|
spoiled one, made, no doubt, mighty certain of the victory; and
|
||
|
when he found he had deceived himself, screamed like a peacock.
|
||
|
The whole country heard of it; now he lay sick at home, with his
|
||
|
silly family standing round the bed in tears; now he rode from
|
||
|
public-house to public-house, and shouted his sorrows into the
|
||
|
lug of Tom, Dick, and Harry. Your father, Mr. David, was a kind
|
||
|
gentleman; but he was weak, dolefully weak; took all this folly
|
||
|
with a long countenance; and one day -- by your leave! --
|
||
|
resigned the lady. She was no such fool, however; it's from her
|
||
|
you must inherit your excellent good sense; and she refused to
|
||
|
be bandied from one to another. Both got upon their knees to
|
||
|
her; and the upshot of the matter for that while was that she
|
||
|
showed both of them the door. That was in August; dear me! the
|
||
|
same year I came from college. The scene must have been highly
|
||
|
farcical."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I thought myself it was a silly business, but I could not
|
||
|
forget my father had a hand in it. "Surely, sir, it had some
|
||
|
note of tragedy," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, no, sir, not at all," returned the lawyer. "For
|
||
|
tragedy implies some ponderable matter in dispute, some dignus
|
||
|
vindice nodus; and this piece of work was all about the
|
||
|
petulance of a young ass that had been spoiled, and wanted
|
||
|
nothing so much as to be tied up and soundly belted. However,
|
||
|
that was not your father's view; and the end of it was, that
|
||
|
from concession to concession on your father's part, and from
|
||
|
one height to another of squalling, sentimental selfishness upon
|
||
|
your uncle's, they came at last to drive a sort of bargain, from
|
||
|
whose ill results you have recently been smarting. The one man
|
||
|
took the lady, the other the estate. Now, Mr. David, they talk
|
||
|
a great deal of charity and generosity; but in this disputable
|
||
|
state of life, I often think the happiest consequences seem to
|
||
|
flow when a gentleman consults his lawyer, and takes all the law
|
||
|
allows him. Anyhow, this piece of Quixotry on your father's
|
||
|
part, as it was unjust in itself, has brought forth a monstrous
|
||
|
family of injustices. Your father and mother lived and died poor
|
||
|
folk; you were poorly reared; and in the meanwhile, what a time
|
||
|
it has been for the tenants on the estate of Shaws! And I might
|
||
|
add (if it was a matter I cared much about) what a time for Mr.
|
||
|
Ebenezer!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And yet that is certainly the strangest part of all," said
|
||
|
I, "that a man's nature should thus change."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"True," said Mr. Rankeillor. "And yet I imagine it was
|
||
|
natural enough. He could not think that he had played a handsome
|
||
|
part. Those who knew the story gave him the cold shoulder; those
|
||
|
who knew it not, seeing one brother disappear, and the other
|
||
|
succeed in the estate, raised a cry of murder; so that upon all
|
||
|
sides he found himself evited. Money was all he got by his
|
||
|
bargain; well, he came to think the more of money. He was
|
||
|
selfish when he was young, he is selfish now that he is old; and
|
||
|
the latter end of all these pretty manners and fine feelings you
|
||
|
have seen for yourself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, sir," said I, "and in all this, what is my
|
||
|
position?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The estate is yours beyond a doubt," replied the lawyer.
|
||
|
"It matters nothing what your father signed, you are the heir of
|
||
|
entail. But your uncle is a man to fight the indefensible; and
|
||
|
it would be likely your identity that he would call in question.
|
||
|
A lawsuit is always expensive, and a family lawsuit always
|
||
|
scandalous; besides which, if any of your doings with your
|
||
|
friend Mr. Thomson were to come out, we might find that we had
|
||
|
burned our fingers. The kidnapping, to be sure, would be a court
|
||
|
card upon our side, if we could only prove it. But it may be
|
||
|
difficult to prove; and my advice (upon the whole) is to make a
|
||
|
very easy bargain with your uncle, perhaps even leaving him at
|
||
|
Shaws where he has taken root for a quarter of a century, and
|
||
|
contenting yourself in the meanwhile with a fair provision."
|
||
|
|
||
|
I told him I was very willing to be easy, and that to carry
|
||
|
family concerns before the public was a step from which I was
|
||
|
naturally much averse. In the meantime (thinking to myself) I
|
||
|
began to see the outlines of that scheme on which we afterwards
|
||
|
acted.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The great affair," I asked, "is to bring home to him the
|
||
|
kidnapping?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Surely," said Mr. Rankeillor, "and if possible, out of
|
||
|
court. For mark you here, Mr. David: we could no doubt find some
|
||
|
men of the Covenant who would swear to your reclusion; but once
|
||
|
they were in the box, we could no longer check their testimony,
|
||
|
and some word of your friend Mr. Thomson must certainly crop
|
||
|
out. Which (from what you have let fall) I cannot think to be desirable."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, sir," said I, "here is my way of it." And I opened
|
||
|
my plot to him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But this would seem to involve my meeting the man
|
||
|
Thomson?" says he, when I had done.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I think so, indeed, sir," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Dear doctor!" cries he, rubbing his brow. "Dear doctor!
|
||
|
No, Mr. David, I am afraid your scheme is inadmissible. I say
|
||
|
nothing against your friend, Mr. Thomson: I know nothing against
|
||
|
him; and if I did -- mark this, Mr. David! -- it would be my
|
||
|
duty to lay hands on him. Now I put it to you: is it wise to
|
||
|
meet? He may have matters to his charge. He may not have told
|
||
|
you all. His name may not be even Thomson!" cries the lawyer,
|
||
|
twinkling; "for some of these fellows will pick up names by the
|
||
|
roadside as another would gather haws."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You must be the judge, sir," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But it was clear my plan had taken hold upon his fancy, for
|
||
|
he kept musing to himself till we were called to dinner and the
|
||
|
company of Mrs. Rankeillor; and that lady had scarce left us
|
||
|
again to ourselves and a bottle of wine, ere he was back harping
|
||
|
on my proposal. When and where was I to meet my friend Mr.
|
||
|
Thomson; was I sure of Mr. T.'s discretion; supposing we could
|
||
|
catch the old fox tripping, would I consent to such and such a
|
||
|
term of an agreement -- these and the like questions he kept
|
||
|
asking at long intervals, while he thoughtfully rolled his wine
|
||
|
upon his tongue. When I had answered all of them, seemingly to
|
||
|
his contentment, he fell into a still deeper muse, even the
|
||
|
claret being now forgotten. Then he got a sheet of paper and a
|
||
|
pencil, and set to work writing and weighing every word; and at
|
||
|
last touched a bell and had his clerk into the chamber.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Torrance," said he, "I must have this written out fair
|
||
|
against to-night; and when it is done, you will be so kind as
|
||
|
put on your hat and be ready to come along with this gentleman
|
||
|
and me, for you will probably be wanted as a witness."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What, sir," cried I, as soon as the clerk was gone, "are
|
||
|
you to venture it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, so it would appear," says he, filling his glass. "But
|
||
|
let us speak no more of business. The very sight of Torrance
|
||
|
brings in my head a little droll matter of some years ago, when
|
||
|
I had made a tryst with the poor oaf at the cross of Edinburgh.
|
||
|
Each had gone his proper errand; and when it came four o'clock,
|
||
|
Torrance had been taking a glass and did not know his master,
|
||
|
and I, who had forgot my spectacles, was so blind without them,
|
||
|
that I give you my word I did not know my own clerk." And
|
||
|
thereupon he laughed heartily.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I said it was an odd chance, and smiled out of politeness;
|
||
|
but what held me all the afternoon in wonder, he kept returning
|
||
|
and dwelling on this story, and telling it again with fresh
|
||
|
details and laughter; so that I began at last to be quite put
|
||
|
out of countenance and feel ashamed for my friend's folly.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Towards the time I had appointed with Alan, we set out from
|
||
|
the house, Mr. Rankeillor and I arm in arm, and Torrance
|
||
|
following behind with the deed in his pocket and a covered
|
||
|
basket in his hand. All through the town, the lawyer was bowing
|
||
|
right and left, and continually being button-holed by gentlemen
|
||
|
on matters of burgh or private business; and I could see he was
|
||
|
one greatly looked up to in the county. At last we were clear of
|
||
|
the houses, and began to go along the side of the haven and
|
||
|
towards the Hawes Inn and the Ferry pier, the scene of my
|
||
|
misfortune. I could not look upon the place without emotion,
|
||
|
recalling how many that had been there with me that day were now
|
||
|
no more: Ransome taken, I could hope, from the evil to come;
|
||
|
Shuan passed where I dared not follow him; and the poor souls
|
||
|
that had gone down with the brig in her last plunge. All these,
|
||
|
and the brig herself, I had outlived; and come through these
|
||
|
hardships and fearful perils without scath. My only thought
|
||
|
should have been of gratitude; and yet I could not behold the
|
||
|
place without sorrow for others and a chill of recollected fear.
|
||
|
|
||
|
I was so thinking when, upon a sudden, Mr. Rankeillor cried
|
||
|
out, clapped his hand to his pockets, and began to laugh.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why," he cries, "if this be not a farcical adventure!
|
||
|
After all that I said, I have forgot my glasses!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
At that, of course, I understood the purpose of his
|
||
|
anecdote, and knew that if he had left his spectacles at home,
|
||
|
it had been done on purpose, so that he might have the benefit
|
||
|
of Alan's help without the awkwardness of recognising him. And
|
||
|
indeed it was well thought upon; for now (suppose things to go
|
||
|
the very worst) how could Rankeillor swear to my friend's
|
||
|
identity, or how be made to bear damaging evidence against
|
||
|
myself? For all that, he had been a long while of finding out
|
||
|
his want, and had spoken to and recognised a good few persons as
|
||
|
we came through the town; and I had little doubt myself that he
|
||
|
saw reasonably well.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As soon as we were past the Hawes (where I recognised the
|
||
|
landlord smoking his pipe in the door, and was amazed to see him
|
||
|
look no older) Mr. Rankeillor changed the order of march,
|
||
|
walking behind with Torrance and sending me forward in the
|
||
|
manner of a scout. I went up the hill, whistling from time to
|
||
|
time my Gaelic air; and at length I had the pleasure to hear it
|
||
|
answered and to see Alan rise from behind a bush. He was
|
||
|
somewhat dashed in spirits, having passed a long day alone
|
||
|
skulking in the county, and made but a poor meal in an alehouse
|
||
|
near Dundas. But at the mere sight of my clothes, he began to
|
||
|
brighten up; and as soon as I had told him in what a forward
|
||
|
state our matters were and the part I looked to him to play in
|
||
|
what remained, he sprang into a new man.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And that is a very good notion of yours," says he; "and I
|
||
|
dare to say that you could lay your hands upon no better man to
|
||
|
put it through than Alan Breck. It is not a thing (mark ye) that
|
||
|
any one could do, but takes a gentleman of penetration. But it
|
||
|
sticks in my head your lawyer-man will be somewhat wearying to
|
||
|
see me," says Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Accordingly I cried and waved on Mr. Rankeillor, who came
|
||
|
up alone and was presented to my friend, Mr. Thomson.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mr. Thomson, I am pleased to meet you," said he. "But I
|
||
|
have forgotten my glasses; and our friend, Mr. David here"
|
||
|
(clapping me on the shoulder), "will tell you that I am little
|
||
|
better than blind, and that you must not be surprised if I pass
|
||
|
you by to-morrow."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This he said, thinking that Alan would be pleased; but the
|
||
|
Highlandman's vanity was ready to startle at a less matter than
|
||
|
that.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, sir," says he, stiffly, "I would say it mattered the
|
||
|
less as we are met here for a particular end, to see justice
|
||
|
done to Mr. Balfour; and by what I can see, not very likely to
|
||
|
have much else in common. But I accept your apology, which was
|
||
|
a very proper one to make."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And that is more than I could look for, Mr. Thomson," said
|
||
|
Rankeillor, heartily. "And now as you and I are the chief actors
|
||
|
in this enterprise, I think we should come into a nice
|
||
|
agreement; to which end, I propose that you should lend me your
|
||
|
arm, for (what with the dusk and the want of my glasses) I am
|
||
|
not very clear as to the path; and as for you, Mr. David, you
|
||
|
will find Torrance a pleasant kind of body to speak with. Only
|
||
|
let me remind you, it's quite needless he should hear more of
|
||
|
your adventures or those of -- ahem -- Mr. Thomson."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Accordingly these two went on ahead in very close talk, and
|
||
|
Torrance and I brought up the rear.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Night was quite come when we came in view of the house of
|
||
|
Shaws. Ten had been gone some time; it was dark and mild, with
|
||
|
a pleasant, rustling wind in the south-west that covered the
|
||
|
sound of our approach; and as we drew near we saw no glimmer of
|
||
|
light in any portion of the building. It seemed my uncle was
|
||
|
Already in bed, which was indeed the best thing for our
|
||
|
arrangements. We made our last whispered consultations some
|
||
|
fifty yards away; and then the lawyer and Torrance and I crept
|
||
|
quietly up and crouched down beside the corner of the house; and
|
||
|
as soon as we were in our places, Alan strode to the door
|
||
|
without concealment and began to knock.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXIX
|
||
|
I COME INTO MY KINGDOM
|
||
|
|
||
|
FOR some time Alan volleyed upon the door, and his knocking only
|
||
|
roused the echoes of the house and neighbourhood. At last,
|
||
|
however, I could hear the noise of a window gently thrust up,
|
||
|
and knew that my uncle had come to his observatory. By what
|
||
|
light there was, he would see Alan standing, like a dark shadow,
|
||
|
on the steps; the three witnesses were hidden quite out of his
|
||
|
view; so that there was nothing to alarm an honest man in his
|
||
|
own house. For all that, he studied his visitor awhile in
|
||
|
silence, and when he spoke his voice had a quaver of misgiving.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What's this?" says he. "This is nae kind of time of night
|
||
|
for decent folk; and I hae nae trokings[1] wi' night-hawks. What
|
||
|
brings ye here? I have a blunderbush."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is that yoursel', Mr. Balfour?" returned Alan, steppig
|
||
|
back and looking up into the darkness. "Have a care of that
|
||
|
blunderbuss; they're nasty things to burst."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What brings ye here? and whae are ye?" says my uncle,
|
||
|
angrily.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have no manner of inclination to rowt out my name to the
|
||
|
country-side," said Alan; "but what brings me here is another
|
||
|
story, being more of your affair than mine; and if ye're sure
|
||
|
it's what ye would like, I'll set it to a tune and sing it to
|
||
|
you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And what is't?" asked my uncle.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"David," says Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What was that?" cried my uncle, in a mighty changed voice.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Shall I give ye the rest of the name, then?" said Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was a pause; and then, "I'm thinking I'll better let
|
||
|
ye in," says my uncle, doubtfully.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I dare say that," said Alan; "but the point is, Would I
|
||
|
go? Now I will tell you what I am thinking. I am thinking that
|
||
|
it is here upon this doorstep that we must confer upon this
|
||
|
business; and it shall be here or nowhere at all whatever; for
|
||
|
I would have you to understand that I am as stiffnecked as
|
||
|
yoursel', and a gentleman of better family."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This change of note disconcerted Ebenezer; he was a little
|
||
|
while digesting it, and then says he, "Weel, weel, what must be
|
||
|
must," and shut the window. But it took him a long time to get
|
||
|
down-stairs, and a still longer to undo the fastenings,
|
||
|
repenting (I dare say) and taken with fresh claps of fear at
|
||
|
every second step and every bolt and bar. At last, however, we
|
||
|
heard the creak of the hinges, and it seems my uncle slipped
|
||
|
gingerly out and (seeing that Alan had stepped back a pace or
|
||
|
two) sate him down on the top doorstep with the blunderbuss
|
||
|
ready in his hands.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And, now" says he, "mind I have my blunderbush, and if ye
|
||
|
take a step nearer ye're as good as deid."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And a very civil speech," says Alan, "to be sure."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Na," says my uncle, "but this is no a very chanty kind of
|
||
|
a proceeding, and I'm bound to be prepared. And now that we
|
||
|
understand each other, ye'll can name your business."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why," says Alan, "you that are a man of so much
|
||
|
understanding, will doubtless have perceived that I am a Hieland
|
||
|
gentleman. My name has nae business in my story; but the county
|
||
|
of my friends is no very far from the Isle of Mull, of which ye
|
||
|
will have heard. It seems there was a ship lost in those parts;
|
||
|
and the next day a gentleman of my family was seeking wreck-wood
|
||
|
for his fire along the sands, when he came upon a lad that was
|
||
|
half drowned. Well, he brought him to; and he and some other
|
||
|
gentleman took and clapped him in an auld, ruined castle, where
|
||
|
from that day to this he has been a great expense to my friends.
|
||
|
My friends are a wee wild-like, and not so particular about the
|
||
|
law as some that I could name; and finding that the lad owned
|
||
|
some decent folk, and was your born nephew, Mr. Balfour, they
|
||
|
asked me to give ye a bit call and confer upon the matter. And
|
||
|
I may tell ye at the off-go, unless we can agree upon some
|
||
|
terms, ye are little likely to set eyes upon him. For my
|
||
|
friends," added Alan, simply, "are no very well off."
|
||
|
|
||
|
My uncle cleated his throat. "I'm no very caring," says he.
|
||
|
"He wasnae a good lad at the best of it, and I've nae tall to
|
||
|
interfere."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay, ay," said Alan, "I see what ye would be at: pretending
|
||
|
ye don't care, to make the ransom smaller."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Na," said my uncle, "it's the mere truth. I take nae
|
||
|
manner of interest in the lad, and I'll pay nae ransome, and ye
|
||
|
can make a kirk and a mill of him for what I care."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hoot, sir," says Alan. "Blood's thicker than water, in the
|
||
|
deil's name! Ye cannae desert your brother's son for the fair
|
||
|
shame of it; and if ye did, and it came to be kennt, ye wouldnae
|
||
|
be very popular in your country-side, or I'm the more deceived."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I'm no just very popular the way it is," returned
|
||
|
Ebenezer; "and I dinnae see how it would come to be kennt. No by
|
||
|
me, onyway; nor yet by you or your friends. So that's idle talk,
|
||
|
my buckie," says he.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then it'll have to be David that tells it," said Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How that?" says my uncle, sharply."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Ou, just this, way" says Alan. "My friends would doubtless
|
||
|
keep your nephew as long as there was any likelihood of siller
|
||
|
to be made of it, but if there was nane, I am clearly of opinion
|
||
|
they would let him gang where he pleased, and be damned to him!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ay, but I'm no very caring about that either," said my
|
||
|
uncle. "I wouldnae be muckle made up with that."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I was thinking that," said Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And what for why?" asked Ebenezer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, Mr. Balfour," replied Alan, "by all that I could
|
||
|
hear, there were two ways of it: either ye liked David and would
|
||
|
pay to get him back; or else ye had very good reasons for not
|
||
|
wanting him, and would pay for us to keep him. It seems it's not
|
||
|
the first; well then, it's the second; and blythe am I to ken
|
||
|
it, for it should be a pretty penny in my pocket and the pockets
|
||
|
of my friends."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I dinnae follow ye there," said my uncle.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No?" said Alan. "Well, see here: you dinnae want the lad
|
||
|
back; well, what do ye want done with him, and how much will ye
|
||
|
pay?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
My uncle made no answer, but shifted uneasily on his seat.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come, sir," cried Alan. "I would have you to ken that I am
|
||
|
a gentleman; I bear a king's name; I am nae rider to kick my
|
||
|
shanks at your hall door. Either give me an answer in civility,
|
||
|
and that out of hand; or by the top of Glencoe, I will ram three
|
||
|
feet of iron through your vitals."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Eh, man," cried my uncle, scrambling to his feet, "give me
|
||
|
a meenit! What's like wrong with ye? I'm just a plain man and
|
||
|
nae dancing master; and I'm tryin to be as ceevil as it's
|
||
|
morally possible. As for that wild talk, it's fair disrepitable.
|
||
|
Vitals, says you! And where would I be with my blunderbush?" he
|
||
|
snarled.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Powder and your auld hands are but as the snail to the
|
||
|
swallow against the bright steel in the hands of Alan," said the
|
||
|
other. "Before your jottering finger could find the trigger, the
|
||
|
hilt would dirl on your breast-bane."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Eh, man, whae's denying it?" said my uncle. "Pit it as ye
|
||
|
please, hae't your ain way; I'll do naething to cross ye. Just
|
||
|
tell me what like ye'll be wanting, and ye'll see that we'll can
|
||
|
agree fine."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Troth, sir," said Alan, "I ask for nothing but plain
|
||
|
dealing. In two words: do ye want the lad killed or kept?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"O, sirs!" cried Ebenezer. "O, sirs, me! that's no kind of
|
||
|
language!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Killed or kept!" repeated Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"O, keepit, keepit!" wailed my uncle. "We'll have nae
|
||
|
bloodshed, if you please."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," says Alan, "as ye please; that'll be the dearer."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The dearer?" cries Ebenezer. "Would ye fyle your hands wi'
|
||
|
crime?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hoot!" said Alan, "they're baith crime, whatever! And the
|
||
|
killing's easier, and quicker, and surer. Keeping the lad'll be
|
||
|
a fashious[2] job, a fashious, kittle business."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I'll have him keepit, though," returned my uncle. "I never
|
||
|
had naething to do with onything morally wrong; and I'm no gaun
|
||
|
to begin to pleasure a wild Hielandman."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ye're unco scrupulous," sneered Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I'm a man o' principle," said Ebenezer, simply; "and if I
|
||
|
have to pay for it, I'll have to pay for it. And besides," says
|
||
|
he, "ye forget the lad's my brother's son."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, well," said Alan, "and now about the price. It's no
|
||
|
very easy for me to set a name upon it; I would first have to
|
||
|
ken some small matters. I would have to ken, for instance, what
|
||
|
ye gave Hoseason at the first off-go?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hoseason!" cries my uncle, struck aback. "What for?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"For kidnapping David," says Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It's a lee, it's a black lee!" cried my uncle. "He was
|
||
|
never kidnapped. He leed in his throat that tauld ye that.
|
||
|
Kidnapped? He never was!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That's no fault of mine nor yet of yours," said Alan; "nor
|
||
|
yet of Hoseason's, if he's a man that can be trusted."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do ye mean?" cried Ebenezer. "Did Hoseason tell ye?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, ye donnered auld runt, how else would I ken?" cried
|
||
|
Alan. "Hoseason and me are partners; we gang shares; so ye can
|
||
|
see for yoursel' what good ye can do leeing. And I must plainly
|
||
|
say ye drove a fool's bargain when ye let a man like the
|
||
|
sailor-man so far forward in your private matters. But that's
|
||
|
past praying for; and ye must lie on your bed the way ye made
|
||
|
it. And the point in hand is just this: what did ye pay him?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Has he tauld ye himsel'?" asked my uncle.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That's my concern," said Alan.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Weel," said my uncle, "I dinnae care what he said, he
|
||
|
leed, and the solemn God's truth is this, that I gave him twenty
|
||
|
pound. But I'll be perfec'ly honest with ye: forby that, he was
|
||
|
to have the selling of the lad in Caroliny, whilk would be as
|
||
|
muckle mair, but no from my pocket, ye see."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thank you, Mr. Thomson. That will do excellently well,"
|
||
|
said the lawyer, stepping forward; and then mighty civilly,
|
||
|
"Good-evening, Mr. Balfour," said he.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And, "Good-evening, Uncle Ebenezer," said I.
|
||
|
|
||
|
And, "It's a braw nicht, Mr. Balfour" added Torrance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Never a word said my uncle, neither black nor white; but
|
||
|
just sat where he was on the top door-step and stared upon us
|
||
|
like a man turned to stone. Alan filched away his blunderbuss;
|
||
|
and the lawyer, taking him by the arm, plucked him up from the
|
||
|
doorstep, led him into the kitchen, whither we all followed, and
|
||
|
set him down in a chair beside the hearth, where the fire was
|
||
|
out and only a rush-light burning.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There we all looked upon him for a while, exulting greatly
|
||
|
in our success, but yet with a sort of pity for the man's shame.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come, come, Mr. Ebenezer," said the lawyer, "you must not
|
||
|
be down-hearted, for I promise you we shall make easy terms. In
|
||
|
the meanwhile give us the cellar key, and Torrance shall draw us
|
||
|
a bottle of your father's wine in honour of the event." Then,
|
||
|
turning to me and taking me by the hand, "Mr. David," says he,
|
||
|
"I wish you all joy in your good fortune, which I believe to be
|
||
|
deserved." And then to Alan, with a spice of drollery, "Mr.
|
||
|
Thomson, I pay you my compliment; it was most artfully
|
||
|
conducted; but in one point you somewhat outran my
|
||
|
comprehension. Do I understand your name to be James? or
|
||
|
Charles? or is it George, perhaps?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And why should it be any of the three, sir?" quoth Alan,
|
||
|
drawing himself up, like one who smelt an offence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Only, sir, that you mentioned a king's name," replied
|
||
|
Rankeillor." and as there has never yet been a King Thomson, or
|
||
|
his fame at least has never come my way, I judged you must refer
|
||
|
to that you had in baptism."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was just the stab that Alan would feel keenest, and I
|
||
|
am free to confess he took it very ill. Not a word would he
|
||
|
answer, but stepped off to the far end of the kitchen, and sat
|
||
|
down and sulked; and it was not till I stepped after him, and
|
||
|
gave him my hand, and thanked him by title as the chief spring
|
||
|
of my success, that he began to smile a bit, and was at last
|
||
|
prevailed upon to join our party.
|
||
|
|
||
|
By that time we had the fire lighted, and a bottle of wine
|
||
|
uncorked; a good supper came out of the basket, to which
|
||
|
Torrance and I and Alan set ourselves down; while the lawyer and
|
||
|
my uncle passed into the next chamber to consult. They stayed
|
||
|
there closeted about an hour; at the end of which period they
|
||
|
had come to a good understanding, and my uncle and I set our
|
||
|
hands to the agreement in a formal manner. By the terms of this,
|
||
|
my uncle bound himself to satisfy Rankeillor as to his
|
||
|
intromissions, and to pay me two clear thirds of the yearly
|
||
|
income of Shaws.
|
||
|
|
||
|
So the beggar in the ballad had come home; and when I lay
|
||
|
down that night on the kitchen chests, I was a man of means and
|
||
|
had a name in the country. Alan and Torrance and Rankeillor
|
||
|
slept and snored on their hard beds; but for me who had lain out
|
||
|
under heaven and upon dirt and stones, so many days and nights,
|
||
|
and often with an empty belly, and in fear of death, this good
|
||
|
change in my case unmanned me more than any of the former evil
|
||
|
ones; and I lay till dawn, looking at the fire on the roof and
|
||
|
planing the future.
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1] Dealings.
|
||
|
[2] Troublesome.
|
||
|
|
||
|
CHAPTER XXX
|
||
|
GOOD-BYE
|
||
|
|
||
|
SO far as I was concerned myself, I had come to port; but I had
|
||
|
still Alan, to whom I was so much beholden, on my hands; and I
|
||
|
felt besides a heavy charge in the matter of the murder and
|
||
|
James of the Glens. On both these heads I unbosomed to
|
||
|
Rankeillor the next morning, walking to and fro about six of the
|
||
|
clock before the house of Shaws, and with nothing in view but
|
||
|
the fields and woods that had been my ancestors' and were now
|
||
|
mine. Even as I spoke on these grave subjects, my eye would take
|
||
|
a glad bit of a run over the prospect, and my heart jump with
|
||
|
pride.
|
||
|
|
||
|
About my clear duty to my friend, the lawyer had no doubt.
|
||
|
I must help him out of the county at whatever risk; but in the
|
||
|
case of James, he was of a different mind.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mr. Thomson," says he, "is one thing, Mr. Thomson's
|
||
|
kinsman quite another. I know little of the facts, but I gather
|
||
|
that a great noble (whom we will call, if you like, the D. of
|
||
|
A.)[1] has some concern and is even supposed to feel some
|
||
|
aimosity in the matter. The D. of A. is doubtless an excellent
|
||
|
nobleman; but, Mr. David, timeo qui nocuere deos. If you
|
||
|
interfere to balk his vengeance, you should remember there is
|
||
|
one way to shut your testimony out; and that is to put you in
|
||
|
the dock. There, you would be in the same pickle as Mr.
|
||
|
Thomson's kinsman. You will object that you are innocent; well,
|
||
|
but so is he. And to be tried for your life before a Highland
|
||
|
jury, on a Highland quarrel and with a Highland Judge upon the
|
||
|
bench, would be a brief transition to the gallows."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Now I had made all these reasonings before and found no
|
||
|
very good reply to them; so I put on all the simplicity I could.
|
||
|
"In that case, sir," said I, "I would just have to be hanged --
|
||
|
would I not?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear boy," cries he, "go in God's name, and do what you
|
||
|
think is right. It is a poor thought that at my time of life I
|
||
|
should be advising you to choose the safe and shameful; and I
|
||
|
take it back with an apology. Go and do your duty; and be
|
||
|
hanged, if you must, like a gentleman. There are worse things in
|
||
|
the world than to be hanged."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not many, sir," said I, smiling.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, yes, sir," he cried, "very many. And it would be ten
|
||
|
times better for your uncle (to go no farther afield) if he were
|
||
|
dangling decently upon a gibbet."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thereupon he turned into the house (still in a great
|
||
|
fervour of mind, so that I saw I had pleased him heartily) and
|
||
|
there he wrote me two letters, making his comments on them as he
|
||
|
wrote.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This," says he, "is to my bankers, the British Linen
|
||
|
Company, placing a credit to your name. Consult Mr. Thomson, he
|
||
|
will know of ways; and you, with this credit, can supply the
|
||
|
means. I trust you will be a good husband of your money; but in
|
||
|
the affair of a friend like Mr. Thompson, I would be even
|
||
|
prodigal. Then for his kinsman, there is no better way than that
|
||
|
you should seek the Advocate, tell him your tale, and offer
|
||
|
testimony. whether he may take it or not, is quite another
|
||
|
matter, and will turn on the D. of A. Now, that you may reach
|
||
|
the Lord Advocate well recommended, I give you here a letter to
|
||
|
a namesake of your own, the learned Mr. Balfour of Pilrig, a man
|
||
|
whom I esteem. It will look better that you should be presented
|
||
|
by one of your own name; and the laird of Pilrig is much looked
|
||
|
up to in the Faculty and stands well with Lord Advocate Grant.
|
||
|
I would not trouble him, if I were you, with any particulars;
|
||
|
and (do you know?) I think it would be needless to refer to Mr.
|
||
|
Thomson. Form yourself upon the laird, he is a good model; when
|
||
|
you deal with the Advocate, be discreet; and in all these
|
||
|
matters, may the Lord guide you, Mr. David!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Thereupon he took his farewell, and set out with Torrance
|
||
|
for the Ferry, while Alan and I turned our faces for the city of
|
||
|
Edinburgh. As we went by the footpath and beside the gateposts
|
||
|
and the unfinished lodge, we kept looking back at the house of
|
||
|
my fathers. It stood there, bare and great and smokeless, like
|
||
|
a place not lived in; only in one of the top windows, there was
|
||
|
the peak of a nightcap bobbing up and down and back and forward,
|
||
|
like the head of a rabbit from a burrow. I had little welcome
|
||
|
when I came, and less kindness while I stayed; but at least I
|
||
|
was watched as I went away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Alan and I went slowly forward upon our way, having little
|
||
|
heart either to walk or speak. The same thought was uppermost in
|
||
|
both, that we were near the time of our parting; and remembrance
|
||
|
of all the bygone days sate upon us sorely. We talked indeed of
|
||
|
what should be done; and it was resolved that Alan should keep
|
||
|
to the county, biding now here, now there, but coming once in
|
||
|
the day to a particular place where I might be able to
|
||
|
communicate with him, either in my own person or by messenger.
|
||
|
In the meanwhile, I was to seek out a lawyer, who was an Appin
|
||
|
Stewart, and a man therefore to be wholly trusted; and it should
|
||
|
be his part to find a ship and to arrange for Alan's safe
|
||
|
embarkation. No sooner was this business done, than the words
|
||
|
seemed to leave us; and though I would seek to jest with Alan
|
||
|
under the name of Mr. Thomson, and he with me on my new clothes
|
||
|
and my estate, you could feel very well that we were nearer
|
||
|
tears than laughter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
We came the by-way over the hill of Corstorphine; and when
|
||
|
we got near to the place called Rest-and-be-Thankful, and looked
|
||
|
down on Corstorphine bogs and over to the city and the castle on
|
||
|
the hill, we both stopped, for we both knew without a word said
|
||
|
that we had come to where our ways parted. Here he repeated to
|
||
|
me once again what had been agreed upon between us: the address
|
||
|
of the lawyer, the daily hour at which Alan might be found, and
|
||
|
the signals that were to be made by any that came seeking him.
|
||
|
Then I gave what money I had (a guinea or two of Rankeillor's)
|
||
|
so that he should not starve in the meanwhile; and then we stood
|
||
|
a space, and looked over at Edinburgh in silence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, good-bye," said Alan, and held out his left hand.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Good-bye," said I, and gave the hand a little grasp, and
|
||
|
went off down hill.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Neither one of us looked the other in the face, nor so long
|
||
|
as he was in my view did I take one back glance at the friend I
|
||
|
was leaving. But as I went on my way to the city, I felt so lost
|
||
|
and lonesome, that I could have found it in my heart to sit down
|
||
|
by the dyke, and cry and weep like any baby.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was coming near noon when I passed in by the West Kirk
|
||
|
and the Grassmarket into the streets of the capital. The huge
|
||
|
height of the buildings, running up to ten and fifteen storeys,
|
||
|
the narrow arched entries that continually vomited passengers,
|
||
|
the wares of the merchants in their windows, the hubbub and
|
||
|
endless stir, the foul smells and the fine clothes, and a
|
||
|
hundred other particulars too small to mention, struck me into
|
||
|
a kind of stupor of surprise, so that I let the crowd carry me
|
||
|
to and fro; and yet all the time what I was thinking of was Alan
|
||
|
at Rest-and-be-Thankful; and all the time (although you would
|
||
|
think I would not choose but be delighted with these braws and
|
||
|
novelties) there was a cold gnawing in my inside like a remorse
|
||
|
for something wrong.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The hand of Providence brought me in my drifting to the
|
||
|
very doors of the British Linen Company's bank.
|
||
|
|
||
|
[1]The Duke of Argyle.
|
||
|
|
||
|
****** THE END ******
|